I. The Hero As Divinity
Odin. Paganism: Scandinavian Mythology
II. The Hero As Prophet
Mahomet: Islam
III. The Hero As Poet
Dante: Shakspeare
IV. The Hero As Priest
Luther; Reformation: Knox; Puritanism
V. The Hero As Man Of Letters
Johnson, Rousseau, Burns
VI. The Hero As King
Cromwell, Napoleon: Modern Revolutionism
Lectures On Heroes.
[May 5, 1840.] Lecture I. The Hero As Divinity.
Odin. Paganism: Scandinavian Mythology.
We have undertaken to discourse here for a little on
Great Men, their manner of appearance in our world's business, how they have
shaped themselves in the world's history, what ideas men formed of them, what
work they did on Heroes, namely, and on their reception and performance; what
I call Hero-worship and the Heroic in human affairs. Too evidently this is a
large topic; deserving quite other treatment than we can expect to give it at
present. A large topic; indeed, an illimitable one; wide as Universal History
itself. For, as I take it, Universal History, the history of what man has
accomplished in this world, is at bottom the History of the Great Men who have
worked here. They were the leaders of men, these great ones; the modellers,
patterns, and in a wide sense creators, of whatsoever the general mass of men
contrived to do or to attain; all things that we see standing accomplished in
the world are properly the outer material result, the practical realization and
embodiment, of Thoughts that dwelt in the Great Men sent into the world: the
soul of the whole world's history, it may justly be considered, were the
history of these. Too clearly it is a topic we shall do no justice to in this
place! One comfort is, that Great Men, taken up in any way, are profitable
company. We cannot look, however imperfectly, upon a great man, without gaining
something by him. He is the living light-fountain, which it is good and
pleasant to be near. The light which enlightens, which has enlightened the darkness
of the world; and this not as a kindled lamp only, but rather as a natural
luminary shining by the gift of Heaven; a flowing light-fountain, as I say, of
native original insight, of manhood and heroic nobleness; in whose radiance
all souls feel that it is well with them. On any terms whatsoever, you will not
grudge to wander in such neighborhood for a while. These Six classes of Heroes,
chosen out of widely distant countries and epochs, and in mere external figure
differing altogether, ought, if we look faithfully at them, to illustrate
several things for us. Could we see them well, we should get some glimpses into
the very marrow of the world's history. How happy, could I but, in any measure,
in such times as these, make manifest to you the meanings of Heroism; the
divine relation (for I may well call it such) which in all times unites a Great
Man to other men; and thus, as it were, not exhaust my subject, but so much as
break ground on it! At all events, I must make the attempt.
It is well said, in every sense, that a man's religion
is the chief fact with regard to him. A man's, or a nation of men's. By
religion I do not mean here the church-creed which he professes, the articles
of faith which he will sign and, in words or otherwise, assert; not this
wholly, in many cases not this at all. We see men of all kinds of professed
creeds attain to almost all degrees of worth or worthlessness under each or any
of them. This is not what I call religion, this profession and assertion; which
is often only a profession and assertion from the outworks of the man, from the
mere argumentative region of him, if even so deep as that. But the thing a man
does practically believe (and this is often enough without asserting it even to
himself, much less to others); the thing a man does practically lay to heart,
and know for certain, concerning his vital relations to this mysterious
Universe, and his duty and destiny there, that is in all cases the primary
thing for him, and creatively determines all the rest. That is his religion;
or, it may be, his mere scepticism and no-religion: the manner it is in which
he feels himself to be spiritually related to the Unseen World or No-World; and
I say, if you tell me what that is, you tell me to a very great extent what the
man is, what the kind of things he will do is. Of a man or of a nation we
inquire, therefore, first of all, What religion they had? Was it Heathenism
plurality of gods, mere sensuous representation of this Mystery of Life, and
for chief recognized element therein Physical Force? Was it Christianism; faith
in an Invisible, not as real only, but as the only reality; Time, through every
meanest moment of it, resting on Eternity; Pagan empire of Force displaced by a
nobler supremacy, that of Holiness? Was it Scepticism, uncertainty and inquiry
whether there was an Unseen World, any Mystery of Life except a mad one doubt
as to all this, or perhaps unbelief and flat denial? Answering of this question
is giving us the soul of the history of the man or nation. The thoughts they
had were the parents of the actions they did; their feelings were parents of
their thoughts: it was the unseen and spiritual in them that determined the
outward and actual their religion, as I say, was the great fact about them.
In these Discourses, limited as we are, it will be good to direct our survey
chiefly to that religious phasis of the matter. That once known well, all is
known. We have chosen as the first Hero in our series Odin the central figure
of Scandinavian Paganism; an emblem to us of a most extensive province of
things. Let us look for a little at the Hero as Divinity, the oldest primary
form of Heroism. Surely it seems a very strange-looking thing this Paganism;
almost inconceivable to us in these days. A bewildering, inextricable jungle of
delusions, confusions, falsehoods, and absurdities, covering the whole field of
Life! A thing that fills us with astonishment, almost, if it were possible,
with incredulity for truly it is not easy to understand that sane men could
ever calmly, with their eyes open, believe and live by such a set of doctrines.
That men should have worshipped their poor fellow-man as a God, and not him
only, but stocks and stones, and all manner of animate and inanimate objects;
and fashioned for themselves such a distracted chaos of hallucinations by way
of Theory of the Universe: all this looks like an incredible fable.
Nevertheless it is a clear fact that they did it. Such hideous inextricable
jungle of misworships, misbeliefs, men, made as we are, did actually hold by,
and live at home in. This is strange. Yes, we may pause in sorrow and silence
over the depths of darkness that are in man; if we rejoice in the heights of
purer vision he has attained to. Such things were and are in man; in all men;
in us too. Some speculators have a short way of accounting for the Pagan
religion: mere quackery, priestcraft, and dupery, say they; no sane man ever
did believe it merely contrived to persuade other men, not worthy of the name
of sane, to believe it! It will be often our duty to protest against this sort
of hypothesis about men's doings and history; and I here, on the very
threshold, protest against it in reference to Paganism, and to all other isms
by which man has ever for a length of time striven to walk in this world. They
have all had a truth in them, or men would not have taken them up. Quackery and
dupery do abound; in religions, above all in the more advanced decaying stages
of religions, they have fearfully abounded: but quackery was never the originating
influence in such things; it was not the health and life of such things, but
their disease, the sure precursor of their being about to die! Let us never
forget this. It seems to me a most mournful hypothesis, that of quackery giving
birth to any faith even in savage men. Quackery gives birth to nothing; gives
death to all things. We shall not see into the true heart of anything, if we
look merely at the quackeries of it; if we do not reject the quackeries
altogether; as mere diseases, corruptions, with which our and all men's sole
duty is to have done with them, to sweep them out of our thoughts as out of our
practice. Man everywhere is the born enemy of lies. I find Grand Lamaism itself
to have a kind of truth in it. Read the candid, clear-sighted, rather sceptical
Mr. Turner's Account of his Embassy to that country, and see. They have their
belief, these poor Thibet people, that Providence sends down always an
Incarnation of Himself into every generation. At bottom some belief in a kind
of Pope! At bottom still better, belief that there is a Greatest Man; that he
is discoverable; that, once discovered, we ought to treat him with an obedience
which knows no bounds! This is the truth of Grand Lamaism; the
"discoverability" is the only error here. The Thibet priests have
methods of their own of discovering what Man is Greatest, fit to be supreme
over them. Bad methods: but are they so much worse than our methods of
understanding him to be always the eldest-born of a certain genealogy? Alas, it
is a difficult thing to find good methods for! We shall begin to have a
chance of understanding Paganism, when we first admit that to its followers it
was, at one time, earnestly true. Let us consider it very certain that men did
believe in Paganism; men with open eyes, sound senses, men made altogether like
ourselves; that we, had we been there, should have believed in it. Ask now,
What Paganism could have been? Another theory, somewhat more respectable,
attributes such things to Allegory. It was a play of poetic minds, say these
theorists; a shadowing forth, in allegorical fable, in personification and
visual form, of what such poetic minds had known and felt of this Universe.
Which agrees, add they, with a primary law of human nature, still everywhere
observably at work, though in less important things, That what a man feels
intensely, he struggles to speak out of him, to see represented before him in
visual shape, and as if with a kind of life and historical reality in it. Now
doubtless there is such a law, and it is one of the deepest in human nature;
neither need we doubt that it did operate fundamentally in this business. The
hypothesis which ascribes Paganism wholly or mostly to this agency, I call a
little more respectable; but I cannot yet call it the true hypothesis. Think,
would we believe, and take with us as our life-guidance, an allegory, a poetic
sport? Not sport but earnest is what we should require. It is a most earnest
thing to be alive in this world; to die is not sport for a man. Man's life
never was a sport to him; it was a stern reality, altogether a serious matter
to be alive! I find, therefore, that though these Allegory theorists are on the
way towards truth in this matter, they have not reached it either. Pagan
Religion is indeed an Allegory, a Symbol of what men felt and knew about the
Universe; and all Religions are symbols of that, altering always as that
alters: but it seems to me a radical perversion, and even inversion, of the
business, to put that forward as the origin and moving cause, when it was
rather the result and termination. To get beautiful allegories, a perfect
poetic symbol, was not the want of men; but to know what they were to believe
about this Universe, what course they were to steer in it; what, in this
mysterious Life of theirs, they had to hope and to fear, to do and to forbear
doing. The Pilgrim's Progress is an Allegory, and a beautiful, just and serious
one: but consider whether Bunyan's Allegory could have preceded the Faith it
symbolizes! The Faith had to be already there, standing believed by everybody
of which the Allegory could then become a shadow; and, with all its
seriousness, we may say a sportful shadow, a mere play of the Fancy, in
comparison with that awful Fact and scientific certainty which it poetically strives
to emblem. The Allegory is the product of the certainty, not the producer of
it; not in Bunyan's nor in any other case. For Paganism, therefore, we have
still to inquire, Whence came that scientific certainty, the parent of such a
bewildered heap of allegories, errors and confusions? How was it, what was it?
Surely it were a foolish attempt to pretend "explaining," in this
place, or in any place, such a phenomenon as that far-distant distracted cloudy
imbroglio of Paganism, more like a cloud-field than a distant continent of
firm land and facts! It is no longer a reality, yet it was one. We ought to
understand that this seeming cloud-field was once a reality; that not poetic
allegory, least of all that dupery and deception was the origin of it. Men, I
say, never did believe idle songs, never risked their soul's life on
allegories: men in all times, especially in early earnest times, have had an
instinct for detecting quacks, for detesting quacks. Let us try if, leaving out
both the quack theory and the allegory one, and listening with affectionate
attention to that far-off confused rumor of the Pagan ages, we cannot ascertain
so much as this at least, That there was a kind of fact at the heart of them;
that they too were not mendacious and distracted, but in their own poor way
true and sane!
You remember that fancy of Plato's, of a man who had
grown to maturity in some dark distance, and was brought on a sudden into the
upper air to see the sun rise. What would his wonder be, his rapt astonishment
at the sight we daily witness with indifference! With the free open sense of a
child, yet with the ripe faculty of a man, his whole heart would be kindled by
that sight, he would discern it well to be Godlike, his soul would fall down in
worship before it. Now, just such a childlike greatness was in the primitive
nations. The first Pagan Thinker among rude men, the first man that began to
think, was precisely this child-man of Plato's. Simple, open as a child, yet
with the depth and strength of a man. Nature had as yet no name to him; he had
not yet united under a name the infinite variety of sights, sounds, shapes and
motions, which we now collectively name Universe, Nature, or the like, and so
with a name dismiss it from us. To the wild deep-hearted man all was yet new,
not veiled under names or formulas; it stood naked, flashing in on him there,
beautiful, awful, unspeakable. Nature was to this man, what to the Thinker and
Prophet it forever is, preternatural. This green flowery rock-built earth, the
trees, the mountains, rivers, many-sounding seas that great deep sea of azure
that swims overhead; the winds sweeping through it; the black cloud fashioning
itself together, now pouring out fire, now hail and rain; what is it? Ay, what?
At bottom we do not yet know; we can never know at all. It is not by our
superior insight that we escape the difficulty; it is by our superior levity,
our inattention, our want of insight. It is by not thinking that we cease to
wonder at it. Hardened round us, encasing wholly every notion we form, is a
wrappage of traditions, hearsays, mere words. We call that fire of the black
thunder-cloud "electricity," and lecture learnedly about it, and
grind the like of it out of glass and silk: but what is it? What made it? Whence
comes it? Whither goes it? Science has done much for us; but it is a poor
science that would hide from us the great deep sacred infinitude of Nescience,
whither we can never penetrate, on which all science swims as a mere
superficial film. This world, after all our science and sciences, is still a
miracle; wonderful, inscrutable, magical and more, to whosoever will think of
it. That great mystery of TIME, were there no other; the illimitable, silent,
never-resting thing called Time, rolling, rushing on, swift, silent, like an
all-embracing ocean-tide, on which we and all the Universe swim like
exhalations, like apparitions which are, and then are not: this is forever very
literally a miracle; a thing to strike us dumb, for we have no word to speak
about it. This Universe, ah me what could the wild man know of it; what can
we yet know? That it is a Force, and thousand-fold Complexity of Forces; a
Force which is not we. That is all; it is not we, it is altogether different
from us. Force, Force, everywhere Force; we ourselves a mysterious Force in the
centre of that. "There is not a leaf rotting on the highway but has Force
in it; how else could it rot?" Nay surely, to the Atheistic Thinker, if
such a one were possible, it must be a miracle too, this huge illimitable
whirlwind of Force, which envelops us here; never-resting whirlwind, high as
Immensity, old as Eternity. What is it? God's Creation, the religious people
answer; it is the Almighty God's! Atheistic science babbles poorly of it, with
scientific nomenclatures, experiments and what not, as if it were a poor dead
thing, to be bottled up in Leyden jars and sold over counters: but the natural
sense of man, in all times, if he will honestly apply his sense, proclaims it
to be a living thing, ah, an unspeakable, godlike thing; towards which the
best attitude for us, after never so much science, is awe, devout prostration
and humility of soul; worship if not in words, then in silence. But now I
remark farther: What in such a time as ours it requires a Prophet or Poet to
teach us, namely, the stripping-off of those poor undevout wrappages,
nomenclatures and scientific hearsays, this, the ancient earnest soul, as yet
unencumbered with these things, did for itself. The world, which is now divine
only to the gifted, was then divine to whosoever would turn his eye upon it. He
stood bare before it face to face. "All was Godlike or God:" Jean
Paul still finds it so; the giant Jean Paul, who has power to escape out of
hearsays: but there then were no hearsays. Canopus shining down over the
desert, with its blue diamond brightness (that wild blue spirit-like
brightness, far brighter than we ever witness here), would pierce into the
heart of the wild Ishmaelitish man, whom it was guiding through the solitary
waste there. To his wild heart, with all feelings in it, with no speech for any
feeling, it might seem a little eye, that Canopus, glancing out on him from the
great deep Eternity; revealing the inner Splendor to him. Cannot we understand
how these men worshipped Canopus; became what we call Sabeans, worshipping the
stars? Such is to me the secret of all forms of Paganism. Worship is
transcendent wonder; wonder for which there is now no limit or measure; that is
worship. To these primeval men, all things and everything they saw exist beside
them were an emblem of the Godlike, of some God. And look what perennial fibre
of truth was in that. To us also, through every star, through every blade of
grass, is not a God made visible, if we will open our minds and eyes? We do not
worship in that way now: but is it not reckoned still a merit, proof of what we
call a "poetic nature," that we recognize how every object has a
divine beauty in it; how every object still verily is "a window through
which we may look into Infinitude itself"? He that can discern the
loveliness of things, we call him Poet! Painter, Man of Genius, gifted,
lovable. These poor Sabeans did even what he does, in their own fashion. That
they did it, in what fashion soever, was a merit: better than what the entirely
stupid man did, what the horse and camel did, namely, nothing! But now if all
things whatsoever that we look upon are emblems to us of the Highest God, I add
that more so than any of them is man such an emblem. You have heard of St.
Chrysostom's celebrated saying in reference to the Shekinah, or Ark of
Testimony, visible Revelation of God, among the Hebrews: "The true
Shekinah is Man!" Yes, it is even so: this is no vain phrase; it is
veritably so. The essence of our being, the mystery in us that calls itself
"I," ah, what words have we for such things? is a breath of
Heaven; the Highest Being reveals himself in man. This body, these faculties,
this life of ours, is it not all as a vesture for that Unnamed? "There is
but one Temple in the Universe," says the devout Novalis, "and that
is the Body of Man. Nothing is holier shall that high form. Bending before men
is a reverence done to this Revelation in the Flesh. We touch Heaven when we
lay our hand on a human body!" This sounds much like a mere flourish of
rhetoric; but it is not so. If well meditated, it will turn out to be a
scientific fact; the expression, in such words as can be had, of the actual
truth of the thing. We are the miracle of miracles, the great inscrutable
mystery of God. We cannot understand it, we know not how to speak of it; but we
may feel and know, if we like, that it is verily so. Well; these truths were
once more readily felt than now. The young generations of the world, who had in
them the freshness of young children, and yet the depth of earnest men, who did
not think that they had finished off all things in Heaven and Earth by merely
giving them scientific names, but had to gaze direct at them there, with awe
and wonder: they felt better what of divinity is in man and Nature; they,
without being mad, could worship Nature, and man more than anything else in
Nature. Worship, that is, as I said above, admire without limit: this, in the
full use of their faculties, with all sincerity of heart, they could do. I
consider Hero-worship to be the grand modifying element in that ancient system
of thought. What I called the perplexed jungle of Paganism sprang, we may say,
out of many roots: every admiration, adoration of a star or natural object, was
a root or fibre of a root; but Hero-worship is the deepest root of all; the
tap-root, from which in a great degree all the rest were nourished and grown.
And now if worship even of a star had some meaning in it, how much more might
that of a Hero! Worship of a Hero is transcendent admiration of a Great Man. I
say great men are still admirable; I say there is, at bottom, nothing else
admirable! No nobler feeling than this of admiration for one higher than
himself dwells in the breast of man. It is to this hour, and at all hours, the
vivifying influence in man's life. Religion I find stand upon it; not Paganism
only, but far higher and truer religions, all religion hitherto known.
Hero-worship, heartfelt prostrate admiration, submission, burning, boundless,
for a noblest godlike Form of Man, is not that the germ of Christianity
itself? The greatest of all Heroes is One whom we do not name here! Let
sacred silence meditate that sacred matter; you will find it the ultimate
perfection of a principle extant throughout man's whole history on earth. Or
coming into lower, less unspeakable provinces, is not all Loyalty akin to
religious Faith also? Faith is loyalty to some inspired Teacher, some spiritual
Hero. And what therefore is loyalty proper, the life-breath of all society, but
an effluence of Hero-worship, submissive admiration for the truly great?
Society is founded on Hero-worship. All dignities of rank, on which human
association rests, are what we may call a Heroarchy (Government of Heroes) or
a Hierarchy, for it is "sacred" enough withal! The Duke means Dux,
Leader; King is Kon-ning, Kan-ning, Man that knows or cans. Society everywhere
is some representation, not insupportably inaccurate, of a graduated Worship of
Heroes reverence and obedience done to men really great and wise. Not
insupportably inaccurate, I say! They are all as bank-notes, these social
dignitaries, all representing gold and several of them, alas, always are
forged notes. We can do with some forged false notes; with a good many even;
but not with all, or the most of them forged! No: there have to come
revolutions then; cries of Democracy, Liberty and Equality, and I know not
what: the notes being all false, and no gold to be had for them, people take
to crying in their despair that there is no gold, that there never was any!
"Gold," Hero-worship, is nevertheless, as it was always and
everywhere, and cannot cease till man himself ceases. I am well aware that in
these days Hero-worship, the thing I call Hero-worship, professes to have gone
out, and finally ceased. This, for reasons which it will be worth while some
time to inquire into, is an age that as it were denies the existence of great
men; denies the desirableness of great men. Show our critics a great man, a
Luther for example, they begin to what they call "account" for him;
not to worship him, but take the dimensions of him and bring him out to be a
little kind of man! He was the "creature of the Time," they say; the
Time called him forth, the Time did everything, he nothing but what we the
little critic could have done too! This seems to me but melancholy work. The
Time call forth? Alas, we have known Times call loudly enough for their great
man; but not find him when they called! He was not there; Providence had not
sent him; the Time, calling its loudest, had to go down to confusion and wreck
because he would not come when called. For if we will think of it, no Time need
have gone to ruin, could it have found a man great enough, a man wise and good
enough: wisdom to discern truly what the Time wanted, valor to lead it on the
right road thither; these are the salvation of any Time. But I liken common
languid Times, with their unbelief, distress, perplexity, with their languid
doubting characters and embarrassed circumstances, impotently crumbling down into
ever worse distress towards final ruin all this I liken to dry dead fuel,
waiting for the lightning out of Heaven that shall kindle it. The great man,
with his free force direct out of God's own hand, is the lightning. His word is
the wise healing word which all can believe in. All blazes round him now, when
he has once struck on it, into fire like his own. The dry mouldering sticks are
thought to have called him forth. They did want him greatly; but as to calling
him forth! Those are critics of small vision, I think, who cry: "See, is
it not the sticks that made the fire?" No sadder proof can be given by a
man of his own littleness than disbelief in great men. There is no sadder
symptom of a generation than such general blindness to the spiritual lightning,
with faith only in the heap of barren dead fuel. It is the last consummation of
unbelief. In all epochs of the world's history, we shall find the Great Man to
have been the indispensable savior of his epoch the lightning, without which
the fuel never would have burnt. The History of the World, I said already, was
the Biography of Great Men. Such small critics do what they can to promote
unbelief and universal spiritual paralysis: but happily they cannot always
completely succeed. In all times it is possible for a man to arise great enough
to feel that they and their doctrines are chimeras and cobwebs. And what is
notable, in no time whatever can they entirely eradicate out of living men's
hearts a certain altogether peculiar reverence for Great Men; genuine
admiration, loyalty, adoration, however dim and perverted it may be.
Hero-worship endures forever while man endures. Boswell venerates his Johnson,
right truly even in the Eighteenth century. The unbelieving French believe in
their Voltaire; and burst out round him into very curious Hero-worship, in that
last act of his life when they "stifle him under roses." It has
always seemed to me extremely curious this of Voltaire. Truly, if Christianity
be the highest instance of Hero-worship, then we may find here in Voltaireism
one of the lowest! He whose life was that of a kind of Antichrist, does again
on this side exhibit a curious contrast. No people ever were so little prone to
admire at all as those French of Voltaire. Persiflage was the character of their
whole mind; adoration had nowhere a place in it. Yet see! The old man of Ferney
comes up to Paris; an old, tottering, infirm man of eighty-four years. They
feel that he too is a kind of Hero; that he has spent his life in opposing
error and injustice, delivering Calases, unmasking hypocrites in high places;
in short that he too, though in a strange way, has fought like a valiant man.
They feel withal that, if persiflage be the great thing, there never was such a
persifleur. He is the realized ideal of every one of them; the thing they are
all wanting to be; of all Frenchmen the most French. He is properly their god
such god as they are fit for. Accordingly all persons, from the Queen
Antoinette to the Douanier at the Porte St. Denis, do they not worship him?
People of quality disguise themselves as tavern-waiters. The Maitre de Poste,
with a broad oath, orders his Postilion, "Va bon train; thou art driving
M. de Voltaire." At Paris his carriage is "the nucleus of a comet,
whose train fills whole streets." The ladies pluck a hair or two from his
fur, to keep it as a sacred relic. There was nothing highest, beautifulest,
noblest in all France, that did not feel this man to be higher, beautifuler,
nobler. Yes, from Norse Odin to English Samuel Johnson, from the divine Founder
of Christianity to the withered Pontiff of Encyclopedism, in all times and
places, the Hero has been worshipped. It will ever be so. We all love great
men; love, venerate and bow down submissive before great men: nay can we honestly
bow down to anything else? Ah, does not every true man feel that he is himself
made higher by doing reverence to what is really above him? No nobler or more
blessed feeling dwells in man's heart. And to me it is very cheering to
consider that no sceptical logic, or general triviality, insincerity and
aridity of any Time and its influences can destroy this noble inborn loyalty
and worship that is in man. In times of unbelief, which soon have to become
times of revolution, much down-rushing, sorrowful decay and ruin is visible to
everybody. For myself in these days, I seem to see in this indestructibility of
Hero-worship the everlasting adamant lower than which the confused wreck of
revolutionary things cannot fall. The confused wreck of things crumbling and even
crashing and tumbling all round us in these revolutionary ages, will get down
so far; no farther. It is an eternal corner-stone, from which they can begin to
build themselves up again. That man, in some sense or other, worships Heroes;
that we all of us reverence and must ever reverence Great Men: this is, to me,
the living rock amid all rushings-down whatsoever the one fixed point in
modern revolutionary history, otherwise as if bottomless and shoreless.
So much of truth, only under an ancient obsolete
vesture, but the spirit of it still true, do I find in the Paganism of old
nations. Nature is still divine, the revelation of the workings of God; the
Hero is still worshipable: this, under poor cramped incipient forms, is what
all Pagan religions have struggled, as they could, to set forth. I think
Scandinavian Paganism, to us here, is more interesting than any other. It is,
for one thing, the latest; it continued in these regions of Europe till the
eleventh century: eight hundred years ago the Norwegians were still worshippers
of Odin. It is interesting also as the creed of our fathers; the men whose
blood still runs in our veins, whom doubtless we still resemble in so many
ways. Strange: they did believe that, while we believe so differently. Let us look
a little at this poor Norse creed, for many reasons. We have tolerable means to
do it; for there is another point of interest in these Scandinavian
mythologies: that they have been preserved so well. In that strange island
Iceland burst up, the geologists say, by fire from the bottom of the sea; a
wild land of barrenness and lava; swallowed many months of every year in black
tempests, yet with a wild gleaming beauty in summertime; towering up there,
stern and grim, in the North Ocean with its snow jokuls, roaring geysers,
sulphur-pools and horrid volcanic chasms, like the waste chaotic battle-field
of Frost and Fire where of all places we least looked for Literature or
written memorials, the record of these things was written down. On the seabord of
this wild land is a rim of grassy country, where cattle can subsist, and men by
means of them and of what the sea yields; and it seems they were poetic men
these, men who had deep thoughts in them, and uttered musically their thoughts.
Much would be lost, had Iceland not been burst up from the sea, not been
discovered by the Northmen! The old Norse Poets were many of them natives of
Iceland. Saemund, one of the early Christian Priests there, who perhaps had a
lingering fondness for Paganism, collected certain of their old Pagan songs,
just about becoming obsolete then Poems or Chants of a mythic, prophetic,
mostly all of a religious character: that is what Norse critics call the Elder
or Poetic Edda. Edda, a word of uncertain etymology, is thought to signify
Ancestress. Snorro Sturleson, an Iceland gentleman, an extremely notable
personage, educated by this Saemund's grandson, took in hand next, near a
century afterwards, to put together, among several other books he wrote, a kind
of Prose Synopsis of the whole Mythology; elucidated by new fragments of
traditionary verse. A work constructed really with great ingenuity, native
talent, what one might call unconscious art; altogether a perspicuous clear
work, pleasant reading still: this is the Younger or Prose Edda. By these and
the numerous other Sagas, mostly Icelandic, with the commentaries, Icelandic or
not, which go on zealously in the North to this day, it is possible to gain
some direct insight even yet; and see that old Norse system of Belief, as it were,
face to face. Let us forget that it is erroneous Religion; let us look at it as
old Thought, and try if we cannot sympathize with it somewhat. The primary
characteristic of this old Northland Mythology I find to be Impersonation of
the visible workings of Nature. Earnest simple recognition of the workings of
Physical Nature, as a thing wholly miraculous, stupendous and divine. What we
now lecture of as Science, they wondered at, and fell down in awe before, as
Religion The dark hostile Powers of Nature they figure to themselves as
"Jotuns," Giants, huge shaggy beings of a demonic character. Frost,
Fire, Sea-tempest; these are Jotuns. The friendly Powers again, as Summer-heat,
the Sun, are Gods. The empire of this Universe is divided between these two; they
dwell apart, in perennial internecine feud. The Gods dwell above in Asgard, the
Garden of the Asen, or Divinities; Jotunheim, a distant dark chaotic land, is
the home of the Jotuns. Curious all this; and not idle or inane, if we will
look at the foundation of it! The power of Fire, or Flame, for instance, which
we designate by some trivial chemical name, thereby hiding from ourselves the
essential character of wonder that dwells in it as in all things, is with these
old Northmen, Loke, a most swift subtle Demon, of the brood of the Jotuns. The
savages of the Ladrones Islands too (say some Spanish voyagers) thought Fire,
which they never had seen before, was a devil or god, that bit you sharply when
you touched it, and that lived upon dry wood. From us too no Chemistry, if it
had not Stupidity to help it, would hide that Flame is a wonder. What is Flame?
Frost the old Norse Seer discerns to be a monstrous hoary Jotun, the Giant
Thrym, Hrym; or Rime, the old word now nearly obsolete here, but still used in
Scotland to signify hoar-frost. Rime was not then as now a dead chemical thing,
but a living Jotun or Devil; the monstrous Jotun Rime drove home his Horses at
night, sat "combing their manes," which Horses were Hail-Clouds, or
sleet Frost-Winds. His Cows No, not his, but a kinsman's, the Giant Hymir's
Cows are Icebergs: this Hymir "looks at the rocks" with his
devil-eye, and they split in the glance of it. Thunder was not then mere
Electricity, vitreous or resinous; it was the God Donner (Thunder) or Thor,
God also of beneficent Summer-heat. The thunder was his wrath: the gathering of
the black clouds is the drawing down of Thor's angry brows; the fire-bolt
bursting out of Heaven is the all-rending Hammer flung from the hand of Thor:
he urges his loud chariot over the mountain-tops, that is the peal; wrathful
he "blows in his red beard," that is the rustling storm-blast
before the thunder begins. Balder again, the White God, the beautiful, the just
and benignant (whom the early Christian Missionaries found to resemble Christ),
is the Sun, beautifullest of visible things; wondrous too, and divine still,
after all our Astronomies and Almanacs! But perhaps the notablest god we hear
tell of is one of whom Grimm the German Etymologist finds trace: the God
Wunsch, or Wish. The God Wish; who could give us all that we wished! Is not
this the sincerest and yet rudest voice of the spirit of man? The rudest ideal
that man ever formed; which still shows itself in the latest forms of our
spiritual culture. Higher considerations have to teach us that the God Wish is
not the true God. Of the other Gods or Jotuns I will mention only for
etymology's sake, that Sea-tempest is the Jotun Aegir, a very dangerous Jotun;
and now to this day, on our river Trent, as I learn, the Nottingham bargemen,
when the River is in a certain flooded state (a kind of backwater, or eddying
swirl it has, very dangerous to them), call it Eager; they cry out, "Have
a care, there is the Eager coming!" Curious; that word surviving, like the
peak of a submerged world! The oldest Nottingham bargemen had believed in the
God Aegir. Indeed our English blood too in good part is Danish, Norse; or
rather, at bottom, Danish and Norse and Saxon have no distinction, except a
superficial one, as of Heathen and Christian, or the like. But all over our
Island we are mingled largely with Danes proper, from the incessant invasions
there were: and this, of course, in a greater proportion along the east coast;
and greatest of all, as I find, in the North Country. From the Humber upwards,
all over Scotland, the Speech of the common people is still in a singular
degree Icelandic; its Germanism has still a peculiar Norse tinge. They too are
"Normans," Northmen, if that be any great beauty! Of the chief
god, Odin, we shall speak by and by. Mark at present so much; what the essence
of Scandinavian and indeed of all Paganism is: a recognition of the forces of
Nature as godlike, stupendous, personal Agencies, as Gods and Demons. Not
inconceivable to us. It is the infant Thought of man opening itself, with awe
and wonder, on this ever-stupendous Universe. To me there is in the Norse
system something very genuine, very great and manlike. A broad simplicity,
rusticity, so very different from the light gracefulness of the old Greek
Paganism, distinguishes this Scandinavian System. It is Thought; the genuine
Thought of deep, rude, earnest minds, fairly opened to the things about them; a
face-to-face and heart-to-heart inspection of the things, the first
characteristic of all good Thought in all times. Not graceful lightness,
half-sport, as in the Greek Paganism; a certain homely truthfulness and rustic
strength, a great rude sincerity, discloses itself here. It is strange, after
our beautiful Apollo statues and clear smiling mythuses, to come down upon the
Norse Gods "brewing ale" to hold their feast with Aegir, the
Sea-Jotun; sending out Thor to get the caldron for them in the Jotun country;
Thor, after many adventures, clapping the Pot on his head, like a huge hat, and
walking off with it, quite lost in it, the ears of the Pot reaching down to
his heels! A kind of vacant hugeness, large awkward gianthood, characterizes
that Norse system; enormous force, as yet altogether untutored, stalking
helpless with large uncertain strides. Consider only their primary mythus of
the Creation. The Gods, having got the Giant Ymer slain, a Giant made by
"warm wind," and much confused work, out of the conflict of Frost and
Fire, determined on constructing a world with him. His blood made the Sea;
his flesh was the Land, the Rocks his bones; of his eyebrows they formed Asgard
their Gods'-dwelling; his skull was the great blue vault of Immensity, and the
brains of it became the Clouds. What a Hyper-Brobdignagian business! Untamed Thought,
great, giantlike, enormous; to be tamed in due time into the compact
greatness, not giantlike, but godlike and stronger than gianthood, of the
Shakspeares, the Goethes! Spiritually as well as bodily these men are our
progenitors. I like, too, that representation they have of the tree Igdrasil.
All Life is figured by them as a Tree. Igdrasil, the Ash-tree of Existence, has
its roots deep down in the kingdoms of Hela or Death; its trunk reaches up
heaven-high, spreads its boughs over the whole Universe: it is the Tree of
Existence. At the foot of it, in the Death-kingdom, sit Three Nornas, Fates,
the Past, Present, Future; watering its roots from the Sacred Well. Its
"boughs," with their buddings and disleafings? events, things
suffered, things done, catastrophes, stretch through all lands and times. Is
not every leaf of it a biography, every fibre there an act or word? Its boughs
are Histories of Nations. The rustle of it is the noise of Human Existence,
onwards from of old. It grows there, the breath of Human Passion rustling
through it; or storm tost, the storm-wind howling through it like the voice
of all the gods. It is Igdrasil, the Tree of Existence. It is the past, the
present, and the future; what was done, what is doing, what will be done;
"the infinite conjugation of the verb To do." Considering how human
things circulate, each inextricably in communion with all, how the word I
speak to you to-day is borrowed, not from Ulfila the Moesogoth only, but from
all men since the first man began to speak, I find no similitude so true as
this of a Tree. Beautiful; altogether beautiful and great. The "Machine of
the Universe," alas, do but think of that in contrast!
Well, it is strange enough this old Norse view of
Nature; different enough from what we believe of Nature. Whence it specially
came, one would not like to be compelled to say very minutely! One thing we may
say: It came from the thoughts of Norse men; from the thought, above all, of
the first Norse man who had an original power of thinking. The First Norse
"man of genius," as we should call him! Innumerable men had passed
by, across this Universe, with a dumb vague wonder, such as the very animals
may feel; or with a painful, fruitlessly inquiring wonder, such as men only
feel; till the great Thinker came, the original man, the Seer; whose shaped
spoken Thought awakes the slumbering capability of all into Thought. It is ever
the way with the Thinker, the spiritual Hero. What he says, all men were not
far from saying, were longing to say. The Thoughts of all start up, as from
painful enchanted sleep, round his Thought; answering to it, Yes, even so!
Joyful to men as the dawning of day from night; is it not, indeed, the
awakening for them from no-being into being, from death into life? We still
honor such a man; call him Poet, Genius, and so forth: but to these wild men he
was a very magician, a worker of miraculous unexpected blessing for them; a
Prophet, a God! Thought once awakened does not again slumber; unfolds itself
into a System of Thought; grows, in man after man, generation after generation,
till its full stature is reached, and such System of Thought can grow no
farther; but must give place to another. For the Norse people, the Man now
named Odin, and Chief Norse God, we fancy, was such a man. A Teacher, and
Captain of soul and of body; a Hero, of worth immeasurable; admiration for
whom, transcending the known bounds, became adoration. Has he not the power of
articulate Thinking; and many other powers, as yet miraculous? So, with
boundless gratitude, would the rude Norse heart feel. Has he not solved for
them the sphinx-enigma of this Universe; given assurance to them of their own
destiny there? By him they know now what they have to do here, what to look for
hereafter. Existence has become articulate, melodious by him; he first has made
Life alive! We may call this Odin, the origin of Norse Mythology: Odin, or
whatever name the First Norse Thinker bore while he was a man among men. His
view of the Universe once promulgated, a like view starts into being in all
minds; grows, keeps ever growing, while it continues credible there. In all
minds it lay written, but invisibly, as in sympathetic ink; at his word it
starts into visibility in all. Nay, in every epoch of the world, the great
event, parent of all others, is it not the arrival of a Thinker in the world!
One other thing we must not forget; it will explain, a little, the confusion of
these Norse Eddas. They are not one coherent System of Thought; but properly the
summation of several successive systems. All this of the old Norse Belief which
is flung out for us, in one level of distance in the Edda, like a picture
painted on the same canvas, does not at all stand so in the reality. It stands
rather at all manner of distances and depths, of successive generations since
the Belief first began. All Scandinavian thinkers, since the first of them,
contributed to that Scandinavian System of Thought; in ever-new elaboration and
addition, it is the combined work of them all. What history it had, how it
changed from shape to shape, by one thinker's contribution after another, till
it got to the full final shape we see it under in the Edda, no man will now
ever know: its Councils of Trebizond, Councils of Trent, Athanasiuses, Dantes,
Luthers, are sunk without echo in the dark night! Only that it had such a
history we can all know. Wheresover a thinker appeared, there in the thing he
thought of was a contribution, accession, a change or revolution made. Alas,
the grandest "revolution" of all, the one made by the man Odin
himself, is not this too sunk for us like the rest! Of Odin what history?
Strange rather to reflect that he had a history! That this Odin, in his wild
Norse vesture, with his wild beard and eyes, his rude Norse speech and ways,
was a man like us; with our sorrows, joys, with our limbs, features;
intrinsically all one as we: and did such a work! But the work, much of it, has
perished; the worker, all to the name. "Wednesday," men will say
to-morrow; Odin's day! Of Odin there exists no history; no document of it; no
guess about it worth repeating. Snorro indeed, in the quietest manner, almost
in a brief business style, writes down, in his Heimskringla, how Odin was a
heroic Prince, in the Black-Sea region, with Twelve Peers, and a great people
straitened for room. How he led these Asen (Asiatics) of his out of Asia;
settled them in the North parts of Europe, by warlike conquest; invented
Letters, Poetry and so forth, and came by and by to be worshipped as Chief God
by these Scandinavians, his Twelve Peers made into Twelve Sons of his own, Gods
like himself: Snorro has no doubt of this. Saxo Grammaticus, a very curious
Northman of that same century, is still more unhesitating; scruples not to find
out a historical fact in every individual mythus, and writes it down as a
terrestrial event in Denmark or elsewhere. Torfaeus, learned and cautious, some
centuries later, assigns by calculation a date for it: Odin, he says, came into
Europe about the Year 70 before Christ. Of all which, as grounded on mere
uncertainties, found to be untenable now, I need say nothing. Far, very far
beyond the Year 70! Odin's date, adventures, whole terrestrial history, figure
and environment are sunk from us forever into unknown thousands of years. Nay
Grimm, the German Antiquary, goes so far as to deny that any man Odin ever
existed. He proves it by etymology. The word Wuotan, which is the original form
of Odin, a word spread, as name of their chief Divinity, over all the Teutonic
Nations everywhere; this word, which connects itself, according to Grimm, with
the Latin vadere, with the English wade and such like, means primarily
Movement, Source of Movement, Power; and is the fit name of the highest god,
not of any man. The word signifies Divinity, he says, among the old Saxon,
German and all Teutonic Nations; the adjectives formed from it all signify
divine, supreme, or something pertaining to the chief god. Like enough! We must
bow to Grimm in matters etymological. Let us consider it fixed that Wuotan
means Wading, force of Movement. And now still, what hinders it from being the
name of a Heroic Man and Mover, as well as of a god? As for the adjectives, and
words formed from it, did not the Spaniards in their universal admiration for
Lope, get into the habit of saying "a Lope flower," "a Lope
dama," if the flower or woman were of surpassing beauty? Had this lasted,
Lope would have grown, in Spain, to be an adjective signifying godlike also.
Indeed, Adam Smith, in his Essay on Language, surmises that all adjectives
whatsoever were formed precisely in that way: some very green thing, chiefly
notable for its greenness, got the appellative name Green, and then the next
thing remarkable for that quality, a tree for instance, was named the green tree,
as we still say "the steam coach," "four-horse coach," or
the like. All primary adjectives, according to Smith, were formed in this way;
were at first substantives and things. We cannot annihilate a man for
etymologies like that! Surely there was a First Teacher and Captain; surely
there must have been an Odin, palpable to the sense at one time; no adjective,
but a real Hero of flesh and blood! The voice of all tradition, history or echo
of history, agrees with all that thought will teach one about it, to assure us
of this. How the man Odin came to be considered a god, the chief god? that
surely is a question which nobody would wish to dogmatize upon. I have said,
his people knew no limits to their admiration of him; they had as yet no scale
to measure admiration by. Fancy your own generous heart's-love of some greatest
man expanding till it transcended all bounds, till it filled and overflowed the
whole field of your thought! Or what if this man Odin, since a great deep
soul, with the afflatus and mysterious tide of vision and impulse rushing on
him he knows not whence, is ever an enigma, a kind of terror and wonder to
himself, should have felt that perhaps he was divine; that he was some
effluence of the "Wuotan," "Movement", Supreme Power and Divinity,
of whom to his rapt vision all Nature was the awful Flame-image; that some
effluence of Wuotan dwelt here in him! He was not necessarily false; he was but
mistaken, speaking the truest he knew. A great soul, any sincere soul, knows
not what he is, alternates between the highest height and the lowest depth;
can, of all things, the least measure Himself! What others take him for, and
what he guesses that he may be; these two items strangely act on one another,
help to determine one another. With all men reverently admiring him; with his
own wild soul full of noble ardors and affections, of whirlwind chaotic
darkness and glorious new light; a divine Universe bursting all into godlike
beauty round him, and no man to whom the like ever had befallen, what could he
think himself to be? "Wuotan?" All men answered, "Wuotan!"
And then consider what mere Time will do in such cases; how if a man was
great while living, he becomes tenfold greater when dead. What an enormous
camera-obscura magnifier is Tradition! How a thing grows in the human Memory,
in the human Imagination, when love, worship and all that lies in the human
Heart, is there to encourage it. And in the darkness, in the entire ignorance;
without date or document, no book, no Arundel-marble; only here and there some
dumb monumental cairn. Why, in thirty or forty years, were there no books, any
great man would grow mythic, the contemporaries who had seen him, being once
all dead. And in three hundred years, and in three thousand years! To attempt
theorizing on such matters would profit little: they are matters which refuse
to be theoremed and diagramed; which Logic ought to know that she cannot speak
of. Enough for us to discern, far in the uttermost distance, some gleam as of a
small real light shining in the centre of that enormous camera-obscure image;
to discern that the centre of it all was not a madness and nothing, but a
sanity and something. This light, kindled in the great dark vortex of the Norse
Mind, dark but living, waiting only for light; this is to me the centre of the
whole. How such light will then shine out, and with wondrous thousand-fold
expansion spread itself, in forms and colors, depends not on it, so much as on
the National Mind recipient of it. The colors and forms of your light will be
those of the cut-glass it has to shine through. Curious to think how, for
every man, any the truest fact is modelled by the nature of the man! I said,
The earnest man, speaking to his brother men, must always have stated what
seemed to him a fact, a real Appearance of Nature. But the way in which such
Appearance or fact shaped itself, what sort of fact it became for him, was
and is modified by his own laws of thinking; deep, subtle, but universal,
ever-operating laws. The world of Nature, for every man, is the Fantasy of
Himself. this world is the multiplex "Image of his own Dream." Who
knows to what unnamable subtleties of spiritual law all these Pagan Fables owe
their shape! The number Twelve, divisiblest of all, which could be halved,
quartered, parted into three, into six, the most remarkable number, this was
enough to determine the Signs of the Zodiac, the number of Odin's Sons, and
innumerable other Twelves. Any vague rumor of number had a tendency to settle
itself into Twelve. So with regard to every other matter. And quite
unconsciously too, with no notion of building up " Allegories "!
But the fresh clear glance of those First Ages would be prompt in discerning
the secret relations of things, and wholly open to obey these. Schiller finds
in the Cestus of Venus an everlasting aesthetic truth as to the nature of all
Beauty; curious: but he is careful not to insinuate that the old Greek
Mythists had any notion of lecturing about the "Philosophy of
Criticism"! On the whole, we must leave those boundless regions. Cannot
we conceive that Odin was a reality? Error indeed, error enough: but sheer
falsehood, idle fables, allegory aforethought, we will not believe that our
Fathers believed in these.
Odin's Runes are a significant feature of him. Runes,
and the miracles of "magic" he worked by them, make a great feature
in tradition. Runes are the Scandinavian Alphabet; suppose Odin to have been
the inventor of Letters, as well as "magic," among that people! It is
the greatest invention man has ever made! this of marking down the unseen
thought that is in him by written characters. It is a kind of second speech,
almost as miraculous as the first. You remember the astonishment and
incredulity of Atahualpa the Peruvian King; how he made the Spanish Soldier who
was guarding him scratch Dios on his thumb-nail, that he might try the next
soldier with it, to ascertain whether such a miracle was possible. If Odin
brought Letters among his people, he might work magic enough! Writing by Runes has
some air of being original among the Norsemen: not a Phoenician Alphabet, but a
native Scandinavian one. Snorro tells us farther that Odin invented Poetry; the
music of human speech, as well as that miraculous runic marking of it.
Transport yourselves into the early childhood of nations; the first beautiful
morning-light of our Europe, when all yet lay in fresh young radiance as of a
great sunrise, and our Europe was first beginning to think, to be! Wonder,
hope; infinite radiance of hope and wonder, as of a young child's thoughts, in
the hearts of these strong men! Strong sons of Nature; and here was not only a
wild Captain and Fighter; discerning with his wild flashing eyes what to do,
with his wild lion-heart daring and doing it; but a Poet too, all that we mean
by a Poet, Prophet, great devout Thinker and Inventor, as the truly Great Man
ever is. A Hero is a Hero at all points; in the soul and thought of him first
of all. This Odin, in his rude semi-articulate way, had a word to speak. A
great heart laid open to take in this great Universe, and man's Life here, and
utter a great word about it. A Hero, as I say, in his own rude manner; a wise,
gifted, noble-hearted man. And now, if we still admire such a man beyond all
others, what must these wild Norse souls, first awakened into thinking, have
made of him! To them, as yet without names for it, he was noble and noblest;
Hero, Prophet, God; Wuotan, the greatest of all. Thought is Thought, however it
speak or spell itself. Intrinsically, I conjecture, this Odin must have been of
the same sort of stuff as the greatest kind of men. A great thought in the wild
deep heart of him! The rough words he articulated, are they not the rudimental
roots of those English words we still use? He worked so, in that obscure
element. But he was as a light kindled in it; a light of Intellect, rude
Nobleness of heart, the only kind of lights we have yet; a Hero, as I say: and
he had to shine there, and make his obscure element a little lighter, as is
still the task of us all. We will fancy him to be the Type Norseman; the finest
Teuton whom that race had yet produced. The rude Norse heart burst up into
boundless admiration round him; into adoration. He is as a root of so many
great things; the fruit of him is found growing from deep thousands of years,
over the whole field of Teutonic Life. Our own Wednesday, as I said, is it not
still Odin's Day? Wednesbury, Wansborough, Wanstead, Wandsworth: Odin grew into
England too, these are still leaves from that root! He was the Chief God to all
the Teutonic Peoples; their Pattern Norseman; in such way did they admire
their Pattern Norseman; that was the fortune he had in the world. Thus if the
man Odin himself have vanished utterly, there is this huge Shadow of him which
still projects itself over the whole History of his People. For this Odin once
admitted to be God, we can understand well that the whole Scandinavian Scheme
of Nature, or dim No-scheme, whatever it might before have been, would now
begin to develop itself altogether differently, and grow thenceforth in a new
manner. What this Odin saw into, and taught with his runes and his rhymes, the
whole Teutonic People laid to heart and carried forward. His way of thought
became their way of thought: such, under new conditions, is the history of
every great thinker still. In gigantic confused lineaments, like some enormous
camera-obscure shadow thrown upwards from the dead deeps of the Past, and
covering the whole Northern Heaven, is not that Scandinavian Mythology in some
sort the Portraiture of this man Odin? The gigantic image of his natural face,
legible or not legible there, expanded and confused in that manner! Ah,
Thought, I say, is always Thought. No great man lives in vain. The History of
the world is but the Biography of great men. To me there is something very
touching in this primeval figure of Heroism; in such artless, helpless, but
hearty entire reception of a Hero by his fellow-men. Never so helpless in
shape, it is the noblest of feelings, and a feeling in some shape or other
perennial as man himself. If I could show in any measure, what I feel deeply
for a long time now, That it is the vital element of manhood, the soul of man's
history here in our world, it would be the chief use of this discoursing at
present. We do not now call our great men Gods, nor admire without limit; ah
no, with limit enough! But if we have no great men, or do not admire at all,
that were a still worse case. This poor Scandinavian Hero-worship, that whole
Norse way of looking at the Universe, and adjusting oneself there, has an
indestructible merit for us. A rude childlike way of recognizing the divineness
of Nature, the divineness of Man; most rude, yet heartfelt, robust, giantlike;
betokening what a giant of a man this child would yet grow to! It was a
truth, and is none. Is it not as the half-dumb stifled voice of the long-buried
generations of our own Fathers, calling out of the depths of ages to us, in
whose veins their blood still runs: "This then, this is what we made of the
world: this is all the image and notion we could form to ourselves of this
great mystery of a Life and Universe. Despise it not. You are raised high above
it, to large free scope of vision; but you too are not yet at the top. No, your
notion too, so much enlarged, is but a partial, imperfect one; that matter is a
thing no man will ever, in time or out of time, comprehend; after thousands of
years of ever-new expansion, man will find himself but struggling to comprehend
again a part of it: the thing is larger shall man, not to be comprehended by
him; an Infinite thing!"
The essence of the Scandinavian, as indeed of all
Pagan Mythologies, we found to be recognition of the divineness of Nature;
sincere communion of man with the mysterious invisible Powers visibly seen at
work in the world round him. This, I should say, is more sincerely done in the
Scandinavian than in any Mythology I know. Sincerity is the great
characteristic of it. Superior sincerity (far superior) consoles us for the
total want of old Grecian grace. Sincerity, I think, is better than grace. I
feel that these old Northmen wore looking into Nature with open eye and soul:
most earnest, honest; childlike, and yet manlike; with a great-hearted
simplicity and depth and freshness, in a true, loving, admiring, unfearing way.
A right valiant, true old race of men. Such recognition of Nature one finds to
be the chief element of Paganism; recognition of Man, and his Moral Duty,
though this too is not wanting, comes to be the chief element only in purer forms
of religion. Here, indeed, is a great distinction and epoch in Human Beliefs; a
great landmark in the religious development of Mankind. Man first puts himself
in relation with Nature and her Powers, wonders and worships over those; not
till a later epoch does he discern that all Power is Moral, that the grand
point is the distinction for him of Good and Evil, of Thou shalt and Thou shalt
not. With regard to all these fabulous delineations in the Edda, I will remark,
moreover, as indeed was already hinted, that most probably they must have been
of much newer date; most probably, even from the first, were comparatively idle
for the old Norsemen, and as it were a kind of Poetic sport. Allegory and
Poetic Delineation, as I said above, cannot be religious Faith; the Faith
itself must first be there, then Allegory enough will gather round it, as the
fit body round its soul. The Norse Faith, I can well suppose, like other
Faiths, was most active while it lay mainly in the silent state, and had not
yet much to say about itself, still less to sing. Among those shadowy Edda
matters, amid all that fantastic congeries of assertions, and traditions, in
their musical Mythologies, the main practical belief a man could have was
probably not much more than this: of the Valkyrs and the Hall of Odin; of an
inflexible Destiny; and that the one thing needful for a man was to be brave.
The Valkyrs are Choosers of the Slain: a Destiny inexorable, which it is
useless trying to bend or soften, has appointed who is to be slain; this was a
fundamental point for the Norse believer; as indeed it is for all earnest men
everywhere, for a Mahomet, a Luther, for a Napoleon too. It lies at the basis
this for every such man; it is the woof out of which his whole system of
thought is woven. The Valkyrs; and then that these Choosers lead the brave to a
heavenly Hall of Odin; only the base and slavish being thrust elsewhither, into
the realms of Hela the Death-goddess: I take this to have been the soul of the
whole Norse Belief. They understood in their heart that it was indispensable to
be brave; that Odin would have no favor for them, but despise and thrust them
out, if they were not brave. Consider too whether there is not something in
this! It is an everlasting duty, valid in our day as in that, the duty of being
brave. Valor is still value. The first duty for a man is still that of subduing
Fear. We must get rid of Fear; we cannot act at all till then. A man's acts are
slavish, not true but specious; his very thoughts are false, he thinks too as a
slave and coward, till he have got Fear under his feet. Odin's creed, if we
disentangle the real kernel of it, is true to this hour. A man shall and must
be valiant; he must march forward, and quit himself like a man, trusting
imperturbably in the appointment and choice of the upper Powers; and, on the
whole, not fear at all. Now and always, the completeness of his victory over
Fear will determine how much of a man he is. It is doubtless very savage that
kind of valor of the old Northmen. Snorro tells us they thought it a shame and
misery not to die in battle; and if natural death seemed to be coming on, they
would cut wounds in their flesh, that Odin might receive them as warriors
slain. Old kings, about to die, had their body laid into a ship; the ship sent
forth, with sails set and slow fire burning it; that, once out at sea, it might
blaze up in flame, and in such manner bury worthily the old hero, at once in
the sky and in the ocean! Wild bloody valor; yet valor of its kind; better, I
say, than none. In the old Sea-kings too, what an indomitable rugged energy!
Silent, with closed lips, as I fancy them, unconscious that they were specially
brave; defying the wild ocean with its monsters, and all men and things;
progenitors of our own Blakes and Nelsons! No Homer sang these Norse Sea-kings;
but Agamemnon's was a small audacity, and of small fruit in the world, to some
of them; to Hrolf's of Normandy, for instance! Hrolf, or Rollo Duke of
Normandy, the wild Sea-king, has a share in governing England at this hour. Nor
was it altogether nothing, even that wild sea-roving and battling, through so
many generations. It needed to be ascertained which was the strongest kind of
men; who were to be ruler over whom. Among the Northland Sovereigns, too, I find
some who got the title Wood-cutter; Forest-felling Kings. Much lies in that. I
suppose at bottom many of them were forest-fellers as well as fighters, though
the Skalds talk mainly of the latter, misleading certain critics not a
little; for no nation of men could ever live by fighting alone; there could not
produce enough come out of that! I suppose the right good fighter was oftenest
also the right good forest-feller, the right good improver, discerner, doer
and worker in every kind; for true valor, different enough from ferocity, is
the basis of all. A more legitimate kind of valor that; showing itself against
the untamed Forests and dark brute Powers of Nature, to conquer Nature for us.
In the same direction have not we their descendants since carried it far? May
such valor last forever with us! That the man Odin, speaking with a Hero's
voice and heart, as with an impressiveness out of Heaven, told his People the
infinite importance of Valor, how man thereby became a god; and that his
People, feeling a response to it in their own hearts, believed this message of
his, and thought it a message out of Heaven, and him a Divinity for telling it
them: this seems to me the primary seed-grain of the Norse Religion, from which
all manner of mythologies, symbolic practices, speculations, allegories, songs
and sagas would naturally grow. Grow, how strangely! I called it a small
light shining and shaping in the huge vortex of Norse darkness. Yet the
darkness itself was alive; consider that. It was the eager inarticulate
uninstructed Mind of the whole Norse People, longing only to become articulate,
to go on articulating ever farther! The living doctrine grows, grows; like a
Banyan-tree; the first seed is the essential thing: any branch strikes itself
down into the earth, becomes a new root; and so, in endless complexity, we have
a whole wood, a whole jungle, one seed the parent of it all. Was not the whole
Norse Religion, accordingly, in some sense, what we called "the enormous
shadow of this man's likeness"? Critics trace some affinity in some Norse
mythuses, of the Creation and such like, with those of the Hindoos. The Cow
Adumbla, "licking the rime from the rocks," has a kind of Hindoo
look. A Hindoo Cow, transported into frosty countries. Probably enough; indeed
we may say undoubtedly, these things will have a kindred with the remotest
lands, with the earliest times. Thought does not die, but only is changed. The
first man that began to think in this Planet of ours, he was the beginner of
all. And then the second man, and the third man; nay, every true Thinker to
this hour is a kind of Odin, teaches men his way of thought, spreads a shadow
of his own likeness over sections of the History of the World.
Of the distinctive poetic
character or merit of this Norse Mythology I have not room to speak; nor does
it concern us much. Some wild Prophecies we have, as the Voluspa in the Elder
Edda; of a rapt, earnest, sibylline sort. But they were comparatively an idle
adjunct of the matter, men who as it were but toyed with the matter, these
later Skalds; and it is their songs chiefly that survive. In later centuries, I
suppose, they would go on singing, poetically symbolizing, as our modern
Painters paint, when it was no longer from the innermost heart, or not from the
heart at all. This is everywhere to be well kept in mind. Gray's fragments of
Norse Lore, at any rate, will give one no notion of it; any more than Pope
will of Homer. It is no square-built gloomy palace of black ashlar marble,
shrouded in awe and horror, as Gray gives it us: no; rough as the North rocks,
as the Iceland deserts, it is; with a heartiness, homeliness, even a tint of
good humor and robust mirth in the middle of these fearful things. The strong
old Norse heart did not go upon theatrical sublimities; they had not time to
tremble. I like much their robust simplicity; their veracity, directness of
conception. Thor "draws down his brows" in a veritable Norse rage;
"grasps his hammer till the knuckles grow white." Beautiful traits of
pity too, an honest pity. Balder "the white God" dies; the beautiful,
benignant; he is the Sungod. They try all Nature for a remedy; but he is dead.
Frigga, his mother, sends Hermoder to seek or see him: nine days and nine
nights he rides through gloomy deep valleys, a labyrinth of gloom; arrives at
the Bridge with its gold roof: the Keeper says, "Yes, Balder did pass
here; but the Kingdom of the Dead is down yonder, far towards the North."
Hermoder rides on; leaps Hell-gate, Hela's gate; does see Balder, and speak
with him: Balder cannot be delivered. Inexorable! Hela will not, for Odin or
any God, give him up. The beautiful and gentle has to remain there. His Wife
had volunteered to go with him, to die with him. They shall forever remain
there. He sends his ring to Odin; Nanna his wife sends her thimble to Frigga,
as a remembrance. Ah me! For indeed Valor is the fountain of Pity too; of
Truth, and all that is great and good in man. The robust homely vigor of the
Norse heart attaches one much, in these delineations. Is it not a trait of
right honest strength, says Uhland, who has written a fine Essay on Thor, that
the old Norse heart finds its friend in the Thunder-god? That it is not
frightened away by his thunder; but finds that Summer-heat, the beautiful noble
summer, must and will have thunder withal! The Norse heart loves this Thor and
his hammer-bolt; sports with him. Thor is Summer-heat: the god of Peaceable
Industry as well as Thunder. He is the Peasant's friend; his true henchman and
attendant is Thialfi, Manual Labor. Thor himself engages in all manner of rough
manual work, scorns no business for its plebeianism; is ever and anon
travelling to the country of the Jotuns, harrying those chaotic Frost-monsters,
subduing them, at least straitening and damaging them. There is a great broad
humor in some of these things. Thor, as we saw above, goes to Jotun-land, to
seek Hymir's Caldron, that the Gods may brew beer. Hymir the huge Giant enters,
his gray beard all full of hoar-frost; splits pillars with the very glance of
his eye; Thor, after much rough tumult, snatches the Pot, claps it on his head;
the "handles of it reach down to his heels." The Norse Skald has a
kind of loving sport with Thor. This is the Hymir whose cattle, the critics
have discovered, are Icebergs. Huge untutored Brobdignag genius, needing only
to be tamed down; into Shakspeares, Dantes, Goethes! It is all gone now, that
old Norse work, Thor the Thunder-god changed into Jack the Giant-killer: but
the mind that made it is here yet. How strangely things grow, and die, and do
not die! There are twigs of that great world-tree of Norse Belief still
curiously traceable. This poor Jack of the Nursery, with his miraculous shoes
of swiftness, coat of darkness, sword of sharpness, he is one. Hynde Etin, and
still more decisively Red Etin of Ireland, in the Scottish Ballads, these are
both derived from Norseland; Etin is evidently a Jotun. Nay, Shakspeare's
Hamlet is a twig too of this same world-tree; there seems no doubt of that.
Hamlet, Amleth I find, is really a mythic personage; and his Tragedy, of the
poisoned Father, poisoned asleep by drops in his ear, and the rest, is a Norse
mythus! Old Saxon, as his wont was, made it a Danish history; Shakspeare, out
of Saxo, made it what we see. That is a twig of the world-tree that has grown,
I think; by nature or accident that one has grown! In fact, these old Norse
songs have a truth in them, an inward perennial truth and greatness, as,
indeed, all must have that can very long preserve itself by tradition alone. It
is a greatness not of mere body and gigantic bulk, but a rude greatness of
soul. There is a sublime uncomplaining melancholy traceable in these old
hearts. A great free glance into the very deeps of thought. They seem to have
seen, these brave old Northmen, what Meditation has taught all men in all ages,
That this world is after all but a show, a phenomenon or appearance, no real
thing. All deep souls see into that, the Hindoo Mythologist, the German
Philosopher, the Shakspeare, the earnest Thinker, wherever he may be:
"We are such stuff as Dreams are made of!" One of Thor's expeditions,
to Utgard (the Outer Garden, central seat of Jotun-land), is remarkable in this
respect. Thialfi was with him, and Loke. After various adventures, they entered
upon Giant-land; wandered over plains, wild uncultivated places, among stones
and trees. At nightfall they noticed a house; and as the door, which indeed
formed one whole side of the house, was open, they entered. It was a simple
habitation; one large hall, altogether empty. They stayed there. Suddenly in
the dead of the night loud noises alarmed them. Thor grasped his hammer; stood
in the door, prepared for fight. His companions within ran hither and thither
in their terror, seeking some outlet in that rude hall; they found a little
closet at last, and took refuge there. Neither had Thor any battle: for, lo, in
the morning it turned out that the noise had been only the snoring of a certain
enormous but peaceable Giant, the Giant Skrymir, who lay peaceably sleeping
near by; and this that they took for a house was merely his Glove, thrown aside
there; the door was the Glove-wrist; the little closet they had fled into was
the Thumb! Such a glove; I remark too that it had not fingers as ours have,
but only a thumb, and the rest undivided: a most ancient, rustic glove! Skrymir
now carried their portmanteau all day; Thor, however, had his own suspicions,
did not like the ways of Skrymir; determined at night to put an end to him as
he slept. Raising his hammer, he struck down into the Giant's face a right
thunder-bolt blow, of force to rend rocks. The Giant merely awoke; rubbed his
cheek, and said, Did a leaf fall? Again Thor struck, so soon as Skrymir again
slept; a better blow than before; but the Giant only murmured, Was that a grain
of sand? Thor's third stroke was with both his hands (the "knuckles
white" I suppose), and seemed to dint deep into Skrymir's visage; but he
merely checked his snore, and remarked, There must be sparrows roosting in this
tree, I think; what is that they have dropt? At the gate of Utgard, a place
so high that you had to "strain your neck bending back to see the top of
it," Skrymir went his ways. Thor and his companions were admitted; invited
to take share in the games going on. To Thor, for his part, they handed a
Drinking-horn; it was a common feat, they told him, to drink this dry at one
draught. Long and fiercely, three times over, Thor drank; but made hardly any
impression. He was a weak child, they told him: could he lift that Cat he saw
there? Small as the feat seemed, Thor with his whole godlike strength could
not; he bent up the creature's back, could not raise its feet off the ground,
could at the utmost raise one foot. Why, you are no man, said the Utgard
people; there is an Old Woman that will wrestle you! Thor, heartily ashamed,
seized this haggard Old Woman; but could not throw her. And now, on their
quitting Utgard, the chief Jotun, escorting them politely a little way, said to
Thor: "You are beaten then: yet be not so much ashamed; there was
deception of appearance in it. That Horn you tried to drink was the Sea; you
did make it ebb; but who could drink that, the bottomless! The Cat you would
have lifted, why, that is the Midgard-snake, the Great World-serpent, which,
tail in mouth, girds and keeps up the whole created world; had you torn that
up, the world must have rushed to ruin! As for the Old Woman, she was Time, Old
Age, Duration: with her what can wrestle? No man nor no god with her; gods or
men, she prevails over all! And then those three strokes you struck, look at
these three valleys; your three strokes made these!" Thor looked at his
attendant Jotun: it was Skrymir; it was, say Norse critics, the old chaotic
rocky Earth in person, and that glove-house was some Earth-cavern! But Skrymir
had vanished; Utgard with its sky-high gates, when Thor grasped his hammer to
smite them, had gone to air; only the Giant's voice was heard mocking:
"Better come no more to Jotunheim!" This is of the allegoric period,
as we see, and half play, not of the prophetic and entirely devout: but as a
mythus is there not real antique Norse gold in it? More true metal, rough from
the Mimer-stithy, than in many a famed Greek Mythus shaped far better! A great
broad Brobdignag grin of true humor is in this Skrymir; mirth resting on
earnestness and sadness, as the rainbow on black tempest: only a right valiant
heart is capable of that. It is the grim humor of our own Ben Jonson, rare old
Ben; runs in the blood of us, I fancy; for one catches tones of it, under a
still other shape, out of the American Backwoods. That is also a very striking
conception that of the Ragnarok, Consummation, or Twilight of the Gods. It is
in the Voluspa Song; seemingly a very old, prophetic idea. The Gods and Jotuns,
the divine Powers and the chaotic brute ones, after long contest and partial
victory by the former, meet at last in universal world-embracing wrestle and
duel; World-serpent against Thor, strength against strength; mutually
extinctive; and ruin, "twilight" sinking into darkness, swallows the
created Universe. The old Universe with its Gods is sunk; but it is not final
death: there is to be a new Heaven and a new Earth; a higher supreme God, and
Justice to reign among men. Curious: this law of mutation, which also is a law
written in man's inmost thought, had been deciphered by these old earnest
Thinkers in their rude style; and how, though all dies, and even gods die, yet
all death is but a phoenix fire-death, and new-birth into the Greater and the Better!
It is the fundamental Law of Being for a creature made of Time, living in this
Place of Hope. All earnest men have seen into it; may still see into it. And
now, connected with this, let us glance at the last mythus of the appearance of
Thor; and end there. I fancy it to be the latest in date of all these fables; a
sorrowing protest against the advance of Christianity, set forth
reproachfully by some Conservative Pagan. King Olaf has been harshly blamed for
his over-zeal in introducing Christianity; surely I should have blamed him far
more for an under-zeal in that! He paid dear enough for it; he died by the
revolt of his Pagan people, in battle, in the year 1033, at Stickelstad, near
that Drontheim, where the chief Cathedral of the North has now stood for many
centuries, dedicated gratefully to his memory as Saint Olaf. The mythus about
Thor is to this effect. King Olaf, the Christian Reform King, is sailing with
fit escort along the shore of Norway, from haven to haven; dispensing justice,
or doing other royal work: on leaving a certain haven, it is found that a
stranger, of grave eyes and aspect, red beard, of stately robust figure, has
stept in. The courtiers address him; his answers surprise by their pertinency
and depth: at length he is brought to the King. The stranger's conversation
here is not less remarkable, as they sail along the beautiful shore; but after
some time, he addresses King Olaf thus: "Yes, King Olaf, it is all
beautiful, with the sun shining on it there; green, fruitful, a right fair home
for you; and many a sore day had Thor, many a wild fight with the rock Jotuns,
before he could make it so. And now you seem minded to put away Thor. King
Olaf, have a care!" said the stranger, drawing down his brows; and when
they looked again, he was nowhere to be found. This is the last appearance of
Thor on the stage of this world! Do we not see well enough how the Fable might
arise, without unveracity on the part of any one? It is the way most Gods have
come to appear among men: thus, if in Pindar's time "Neptune was seen once
at the Nemean Games," what was this Neptune too but a "stranger of
noble grave aspect," fit to be "seen"! There is something
pathetic, tragic for me in this last voice of Paganism. Thor is vanished, the
whole Norse world has vanished; and will not return ever again. In like fashion
to that, pass away the highest things. All things that have been in this world,
all things that are or will be in it, have to vanish: we have our sad farewell
to give them. That Norse Religion, a rude but earnest, sternly impressive
Consecration of Valor (so we may define it), sufficed for these old valiant
Northmen. Consecration of Valor is not a bad thing! We will take it for good,
so far as it goes. Neither is there no use in knowing something about this old
Paganism of our Fathers. Unconsciously, and combined with higher things, it is
in us yet, that old Faith withal! To know it consciously, brings us into closer
and clearer relation with the Past, with our own possessions in the Past. For
the whole Past, as I keep repeating, is the possession of the Present; the Past
had always something true, and is a precious possession. In a different time,
in a different place, it is always some other side of our common Human Nature
that has been developing itself. The actual True is the sum of all these; not
any one of them by itself constitutes what of Human Nature is hitherto
developed. Better to know them all than misknow them. "To which of these
Three Religions do you specially adhere?" inquires Meister of his Teacher.
"To all the Three!" answers the other: "To all the Three; for
they by their union first constitute the True Religion."
May 8, 1840.] Lecture II. The Hero As Prophet.
Mahomet: Islam.
From the first rude times of Paganism among the
Scandinavians in the North, we advance to a very different epoch of religion,
among a very different people: Mahometanism among the Arabs. A great change;
what a change and progress is indicated here, in the universal condition and
thoughts of men! The Hero is not now regarded as a God among his fellowmen; but
as one God-inspired, as a Prophet. It is the second phasis of Hero-worship: the
first or oldest, we may say, has passed away without return; in the history of
the world there will not again be any man, never so great, whom his fellowmen
will take for a god. Nay we might rationally ask, Did any set of human beings
ever really think the man they saw there standing beside them a god, the maker
of this world? Perhaps not: it was usually some man they remembered, or had
seen. But neither can this any more be. The Great Man is not recognized
henceforth as a god any more. It was a rude gross error, that of counting the
Great Man a god. Yet let us say that it is at all times difficult to know what
he is, or how to account of him and receive him! The most significant feature
in the history of an epoch is the manner it has of welcoming a Great Man. Ever,
to the true instincts of men, there is something godlike in him. Whether they
shall take him to be a god, to be a prophet, or what they shall take him to be?
that is ever a grand question; by their way of answering that, we shall see, as
through a little window, into the very heart of these men's spiritual
condition. For at bottom the Great Man, as he comes from the hand of Nature, is
ever the same kind of thing: Odin, Luther, Johnson, Burns; I hope to make it
appear that these are all originally of one stuff; that only by the world's
reception of them, and the shapes they assume, are they so immeasurably
diverse. The worship of Odin astonishes us, to fall prostrate before the Great
Man, into deliquium of love and wonder over him, and feel in their hearts that
he was a denizen of the skies, a god! This was imperfect enough: but to
welcome, for example, a Burns as we did, was that what we can call perfect? The
most precious gift that Heaven can give to the Earth; a man of
"genius" as we call it; the Soul of a Man actually sent down from the
skies with a God's-message to us, this we waste away as an idle artificial
firework, sent to amuse us a little, and sink it into ashes, wreck and
ineffectuality: such reception of a Great Man I do not call very perfect
either! Looking into the heart of the thing, one may perhaps call that of Burns
a still uglier phenomenon, betokening still sadder imperfections in mankind's
ways, than the Scandinavian method itself! To fall into mere unreasoning
deliquium of love and admiration, was not good; but such unreasoning, nay
irrational supercilious no-love at all is perhaps still worse! It is a thing
forever changing, this of Hero-worship: different in each age, difficult to do
well in any age. Indeed, the heart of the whole business of the age, one may
say, is to do it well. We have chosen Mahomet not as the most eminent Prophet;
but as the one we are freest to speak of. He is by no means the truest of
Prophets; but I do esteem him a true one. Farther, as there is no danger of our
becoming, any of us, Mahometans, I mean to say all the good of him I justly
can. It is the way to get at his secret: let us try to understand what he meant
with the world; what the world meant and means with him, will then be a more
answerable question. Our current hypothesis about Mahomet, that he was a
scheming Impostor, a Falsehood incarnate, that his religion is a mere mass of
quackery and fatuity, begins really to be now untenable to any one. The lies,
which well-meaning zeal has heaped round this man, are disgraceful to ourselves
only. When Pococke inquired of Grotius, Where the proof was of that story of
the pigeon, trained to pick peas from Mahomet's ear, and pass for an angel
dictating to him? Grotius answered that there was no proof! It is really time
to dismiss all that. The word this man spoke has been the life-guidance now of
a hundred and eighty millions of men these twelve hundred years. These hundred
and eighty millions were made by God as well as we. A greater number of God's
creatures believe in Mahomet's word at this hour, than in any other word
whatever. Are we to suppose that it was a miserable piece of spiritual
legerdemain, this which so many creatures of the Almighty have lived by and
died by? I, for my part, cannot form any such supposition. I will believe most
things sooner than that. One would be entirely at a loss what to think of this
world at all, if quackery so grew and were sanctioned here. Alas, such theories
are very lamentable. If we would attain to knowledge of anything in God's true
Creation, let us disbelieve them wholly! They are the product of an Age of
Scepticism: they indicate the saddest spiritual paralysis, and mere death-life
of the souls of men: more godless theory, I think, was never promulgated in
this Earth. A false man found a religion? Why, a false man cannot build a brick
house! If he do not know and follow truly the properties of mortar, burnt clay
and what else be works in, it is no house that he makes, but a rubbish-heap. It
will not stand for twelve centuries, to lodge a hundred and eighty millions; it
will fall straightway. A man must conform himself to Nature's laws, be verily
in communion with Nature and the truth of things, or Nature will answer him,
No, not at all! Speciosities are specious ah me! a Cagliostro, many
Cagliostros, prominent world-leaders, do prosper by their quackery, for a day.
It is like a forged bank-note; they get it passed out of their worthless hands:
others, not they, have to smart for it. Nature bursts up in fire-flames, French
Revolutions and such like, proclaiming with terrible veracity that forged notes
are forged. But of a Great Man especially, of him I will venture to assert that
it is incredible he should have been other than true. It seems to me the
primary foundation of him, and of all that can lie in him, this. No Mirabeau,
Napoleon, Burns, Cromwell, no man adequate to do anything, but is first of all
in right earnest about it; what I call a sincere man. I should say sincerity, a
deep, great, genuine sincerity, is the first characteristic of all men in any
way heroic. Not the sincerity that calls itself sincere; ah no, that is a very
poor matter indeed; a shallow braggart conscious sincerity; oftenest
self-conceit mainly. The Great Man's sincerity is of the kind he cannot speak
of, is not conscious of: nay, I suppose, he is conscious rather of insincerity;
for what man can walk accurately by the law of truth for one day? No, the Great
Man does not boast himself sincere, far from that; perhaps does not ask himself
if he is so: I would say rather, his sincerity does not depend on himself; he
cannot help being sincere! The great Fact of Existence is great to him. Fly as
he will, he cannot get out of the awful presence of this Reality. His mind is
so made; he is great by that, first of all. Fearful and wonderful, real as
Life, real as Death, is this Universe to him. Though all men should forget its
truth, and walk in a vain show, he cannot. At all moments the Flame-image
glares in upon him; undeniable, there, there! I wish you to take this as my
primary definition of a Great Man. A little man may have this, it is competent
to all men that God has made: but a Great Man cannot be without it. Such a man
is what we call an original man; he comes to us at first-hand. A messenger he,
sent from the Infinite Unknown with tidings to us. We may call him Poet,
Prophet, God; in one way or other, we all feel that the words he utters are as
no other man's words. Direct from the Inner Fact of things; he lives, and has
to live, in daily communion with that. Hearsays cannot hide it from him; he is
blind, homeless, miserable, following hearsays; it glares in upon him. Really
his utterances, are they not a kind of "revelation;" what we must
call such for want of some other name? It is from the heart of the world that
he comes; he is portion of the primal reality of things. God has made many
revelations: but this man too, has not God made him, the latest and newest of
all? The "inspiration of the Almighty giveth him understanding:" we
must listen before all to him.
This Mahomet, then, we will in no wise consider as an
Inanity and Theatricality, a poor conscious ambitious schemer; we cannot
conceive him so. The rude message he delivered was a real one withal; an
earnest confused voice from the unknown Deep. The man's words were not false,
nor his workings here below; no Inanity and Simulacrum; a fiery mass of Life
cast up from the great bosom of Nature herself. To kindle the world; the
world's Maker had ordered it so. Neither can the faults, imperfections,
insincerities even, of Mahomet, if such were never so well proved against him,
shake this primary fact about him. On the whole, we make too much of faults;
the details of the business hide the real centre of it. Faults? The greatest of
faults, I should say, is to be conscious of none. Readers of the Bible above
all, one would think, might know better. Who is called there "the man
according to God's own heart"? David, the Hebrew King, had fallen into
sins enough; blackest crimes; there was no want of sins. And thereupon the
unbelievers sneer and ask, Is this your man according to God's heart? The
sneer, I must say, seems to me but a shallow one. What are faults, what are the
outward details of a life; if the inner secret of it, the remorse, temptations,
true, often-baffled, never-ended struggle of it, be forgotten? "It is not
in man that walketh to direct his steps." Of all acts, is not, for a man,
repentance the most divine? The deadliest sin, I say, were that same
supercilious consciousness of no sin; that is death; the heart so conscious is
divorced from sincerity, humility and fact; is dead: it is "pure" as
dead dry sand is pure. David's life and history, as written for us in those
Psalms of his, I consider to be the truest emblem ever given of a man's moral
progress and warfare here below. All earnest souls will ever discern in it the
faithful struggle of an earnest human soul towards what is good and best.
Struggle often baffled, sore baffled, down as into entire wreck; yet a struggle
never ended; ever, with tears, repentance, true unconquerable purpose, begun
anew. Poor human nature! Is not a man's walking, in truth, always that: "a
succession of falls"? Man can do no other. In this wild element of a Life,
he has to struggle onwards; now fallen, deep-abased; and ever, with tears,
repentance, with bleeding heart, he has to rise again, struggle again still
onwards. That his struggle be a faithful unconquerable one: that is the
question of questions. We will put up with many sad details, if the soul of it
were true. Details by themselves will never teach us what it is. I believe we
misestimate Mahomet's faults even as faults: but the secret of him will never
be got by dwelling there. We will leave all this behind us; and assuring
ourselves that he did mean some true thing, ask candidly what it was or might
be.
These Arabs Mahomet was born among are certainly a
notable people. Their country itself is notable; the fit habitation for such a
race. Savage inaccessible rock-mountains, great grim deserts, alternating with
beautiful strips of verdure: wherever water is, there is greenness, beauty;
odoriferous balm-shrubs, date-trees, frankincense-trees. Consider that wide
waste horizon of sand, empty, silent, like a sand-sea, dividing habitable place
from habitable. You are all alone there, left alone with the Universe; by day a
fierce sun blazing down on it with intolerable radiance; by night the great
deep Heaven with its stars. Such a country is fit for a swift-handed,
deep-hearted race of men. There is something most agile, active, and yet most
meditative, enthusiastic in the Arab character. The Persians are called the
French of the East; we will call the Arabs Oriental Italians. A gifted noble
people; a people of wild strong feelings, and of iron restraint over these: the
characteristic of noble-mindedness, of genius. The wild Bedouin welcomes the
stranger to his tent, as one having right to all that is there; were it his
worst enemy, he will slay his foal to treat him, will serve him with sacred hospitality
for three days, will set him fairly on his way; and then, by another law as
sacred, kill him if he can. In words too as in action. They are not a
loquacious people, taciturn rather; but eloquent, gifted when they do speak. An
earnest, truthful kind of men. They are, as we know, of Jewish kindred: but
with that deadly terrible earnestness of the Jews they seem to combine
something graceful, brilliant, which is not Jewish. They had "Poetic
contests" among them before the time of Mahomet. Sale says, at Ocadh, in
the South of Arabia, there were yearly fairs, and there, when the merchandising
was done, Poets sang for prizes: the wild people gathered to hear that. One
Jewish quality these Arabs manifest; the outcome of many or of all high
qualities: what we may call religiosity. From of old they had been zealous
worshippers, according to their light. They worshipped the stars, as Sabeans;
worshipped many natural objects, recognized them as symbols, immediate
manifestations, of the Maker of Nature. It was wrong; and yet not wholly wrong.
All God's works are still in a sense symbols of God. Do we not, as I urged,
still account it a merit to recognize a certain inexhaustible significance,
"poetic beauty" as we name it, in all natural objects whatsoever? A
man is a poet, and honored, for doing that, and speaking or singing it, a kind
of diluted worship. They had many Prophets, these Arabs; Teachers each to his
tribe, each according to the light he had. But indeed, have we not from of old
the noblest of proofs, still palpable to every one of us, of what devoutness
and noble-mindedness had dwelt in these rustic thoughtful peoples? Biblical
critics seem agreed that our own Book of Job was written in that region of the
world. I call that, apart from all theories about it, one of the grandest
things ever written with pen. One feels, indeed, as if it were not Hebrew; such
a noble universality, different from noble patriotism or sectarianism, reigns
in it. A noble Book; all men's Book! It is our first, oldest statement of the
never-ending Problem, man's destiny, and God's ways with him here in this
earth. And all in such free flowing outlines; grand in its sincerity, in its
simplicity; in its epic melody, and repose of reconcilement. There is the
seeing eye, the mildly understanding heart. So true every way; true eyesight
and vision for all things; material things no less than spiritual: the Horse,
"hast thou clothed his neck with thunder?" he "laughs at the
shaking of the spear!" Such living likenesses were never since drawn.
Sublime sorrow, sublime reconciliation; oldest choral melody as of the heart of
mankind; so soft, and great; as the summer midnight, as the world with its
seas and stars! There is nothing written, I think, in the Bible or out of it,
of equal literary merit. To the idolatrous Arabs one of the most ancient
universal objects of worship was that Black Stone, still kept in the building
called Caabah, at Mecca. Diodorus Siculus mentions this Caabah in a way not to
be mistaken, as the oldest, most honored temple in his time; that is, some
half-century before our Era. Silvestre de Sacy says there is some likelihood
that the Black Stone is an aerolite. In that case, some man might see it fall
out of Heaven! It stands now beside the Well Zemzem; the Caabah is built over
both. A Well is in all places a beautiful affecting object, gushing out like
life from the hard earth; still more so in those hot dry countries, where it
is the first condition of being. The Well Zemzem has its name from the bubbling
sound of the waters, zem-zem; they think it is the Well which Hagar found with
her little Ishmael in the wilderness: the aerolite and it have been sacred now,
and had a Caabah over them, for thousands of years. A curious object, that
Caabah! There it stands at this hour, in the black cloth-covering the Sultan
sends it yearly; "twenty-seven cubits high;" with circuit, with
double circuit of pillars, with festoon-rows of lamps and quaint ornaments: the
lamps will be lighted again this night, to glitter again under the stars. An
authentic fragment of the oldest Past. It is the Keblah of all Moslem: from
Delhi all onwards to Morocco, the eyes of innumerable praying men are turned
towards it, five times, this day and all days: one of the notablest centres in
the Habitation of Men. It had been from the sacredness attached to this Caabah
Stone and Hagar's Well, from the pilgrimings of all tribes of Arabs thither,
that Mecca took its rise as a Town. A great town once, though much decayed now.
It has no natural advantage for a town; stands in a sandy hollow amid bare
barren hills, at a distance from the sea; its provisions, its very bread, have
to be imported. But so many pilgrims needed lodgings: and then all places of
pilgrimage do, from the first, become places of trade. The first day pilgrims
meet, merchants have also met: where men see themselves assembled for one
object, they find that they can accomplish other objects which depend on
meeting together. Mecca became the Fair of all Arabia. And thereby indeed the
chief staple and warehouse of whatever Commerce there was between the Indian
and the Western countries, Syria, Egypt, even Italy. It had at one time a
population of 100,000; buyers, forwarders of those Eastern and Western
products; importers for their own behoof of provisions and corn. The government
was a kind of irregular aristocratic republic, not without a touch of
theocracy. Ten Men of a chief tribe, chosen in some rough way, were Governors
of Mecca, and Keepers of the Caabah. The Koreish were the chief tribe in
Mahomet's time; his own family was of that tribe. The rest of the Nation,
fractioned and cut asunder by deserts, lived under similar rude patriarchal
governments by one or several: herdsmen, carriers, traders, generally robbers
too; being oftenest at war one with another, or with all: held together by no
open bond, if it were not this meeting at the Caabah, where all forms of Arab
Idolatry assembled in common adoration; held mainly by the inward indissoluble
bond of a common blood and language. In this way had the Arabs lived for long
ages, unnoticed by the world; a people of great qualities, unconsciously
waiting for the day when they should become notable to all the world. Their
Idolatries appear to have been in a tottering state; much was getting into
confusion and fermentation among them. Obscure tidings of the most important
Event ever transacted in this world, the Life and Death of the Divine Man in
Judea, at once the symptom and cause of immeasurable change to all people in
the world, had in the course of centuries reached into Arabia too; and could
not but, of itself, have produced fermentation there.
It was among this Arab people, so circumstanced, in
the year 570 of our Era, that the man Mahomet was born. He was of the family of
Hashem, of the Koreish tribe as we said; though poor, connected with the chief
persons of his country. Almost at his birth he lost his Father; at the age of
six years his Mother too, a woman noted for her beauty, her worth and sense: he
fell to the charge of his Grandfather, an old man, a hundred years old. A good
old man: Mahomet's Father, Abdallah, had been his youngest favorite son. He saw
in Mahomet, with his old life-worn eyes, a century old, the lost Abdallah come
back again, all that was left of Abdallah. He loved the little orphan Boy
greatly; used to say, They must take care of that beautiful little Boy, nothing
in their kindred was more precious than he. At his death, while the boy was
still but two years old, he left him in charge to Abu Thaleb the eldest of the
Uncles, as to him that now was head of the house. By this Uncle, a just and
rational man as everything betokens, Mahomet was brought up in the best Arab
way. Mahomet, as he grew up, accompanied his Uncle on trading journeys and such
like; in his eighteenth year one finds him a fighter following his Uncle in
war. But perhaps the most significant of all his journeys is one we find noted
as of some years' earlier date: a journey to the Fairs of Syria. The young man
here first came in contact with a quite foreign world, with one foreign
element of endless moment to him: the Christian Religion. I know not what to
make of that "Sergius, the Nestorian Monk," whom Abu Thaleb and he
are said to have lodged with; or how much any monk could have taught one still
so young. Probably enough it is greatly exaggerated, this of the Nestorian
Monk. Mahomet was only fourteen; had no language but his own: much in Syria
must have been a strange unintelligible whirlpool to him. But the eyes of the
lad were open; glimpses of many things would doubtless be taken in, and lie
very enigmatic as yet, which were to ripen in a strange way into views, into
beliefs and insights one day. These journeys to Syria were probably the
beginning of much to Mahomet. One other circumstance we must not forget: that
he had no school-learning; of the thing we call school-learning none at all.
The art of writing was but just introduced into Arabia; it seems to be the true
opinion that Mahomet never could write! Life in the Desert, with its
experiences, was all his education. What of this infinite Universe he, from his
dim place, with his own eyes and thoughts, could take in, so much and no more
of it was he to know. Curious, if we will reflect on it, this of having no
books. Except by what he could see for himself, or hear of by uncertain rumor
of speech in the obscure Arabian Desert, he could know nothing. The wisdom that
had been before him or at a distance from him in the world, was in a manner as
good as not there for him. Of the great brother souls, flame-beacons through so
many lands and times, no one directly communicates with this great soul. He is
alone there, deep down in the bosom of the Wilderness; has to grow up so,
alone with Nature and his own Thoughts. But, from an early age, he had been remarked
as a thoughtful man. His companions named him "Al Amin, The
Faithful." A man of truth and fidelity; true in what he did, in what he
spake and thought. They noted that he always meant something. A man rather
taciturn in speech; silent when there was nothing to be said; but pertinent,
wise, sincere, when he did speak; always throwing light on the matter. This is
the only sort of speech worth speaking! Through life we find him to have been
regarded as an altogether solid, brotherly, genuine man. A serious, sincere
character; yet amiable, cordial, companionable, jocose even; a good laugh in
him withal: there are men whose laugh is as untrue as anything about them; who
cannot laugh. One hears of Mahomet's beauty: his fine sagacious honest face,
brown florid complexion, beaming black eyes; I somehow like too that vein on
the brow, which swelled up black when he was in anger: like the "horseshoe
vein" in Scott's Redgauntlet. It was a kind of feature in the Hashem
family, this black swelling vein in the brow; Mahomet had it prominent, as
would appear. A spontaneous, passionate, yet just, true-meaning man! Full of
wild faculty, fire and light; of wild worth, all uncultured; working out his
life-task in the depths of the Desert there. How he was placed with Kadijah, a
rich Widow, as her Steward, and travelled in her business, again to the Fairs
of Syria; how he managed all, as one can well understand, with fidelity,
adroitness; how her gratitude, her regard for him grew: the story of their
marriage is altogether a graceful intelligible one, as told us by the Arab
authors. He was twenty-five; she forty, though still beautiful. He seems to
have lived in a most affectionate, peaceable, wholesome way with this wedded
benefactress; loving her truly, and her alone. It goes greatly against the
impostor theory, the fact that he lived in this entirely unexceptionable,
entirely quiet and commonplace way, till the heat of his years was done. He was
forty before he talked of any mission from Heaven. All his irregularities, real
and supposed, date from after his fiftieth year, when the good Kadijah died.
All his "ambition," seemingly, had been, hitherto, to live an honest
life; his "fame," the mere good opinion of neighbors that knew him,
had been sufficient hitherto. Not till he was already getting old, the prurient
heat of his life all burnt out, and peace growing to be the chief thing this
world could give him, did he start on the "career of ambition;" and,
belying all his past character and existence, set up as a wretched empty
charlatan to acquire what he could now no longer enjoy! For my share, I have no
faith whatever in that. Ah no: this deep-hearted Son of the Wilderness, with
his beaming black eyes and open social deep soul, had other thoughts in him
than ambition. A silent great soul; he was one of those who cannot but be in
earnest; whom Nature herself has appointed to be sincere. While others walk in
formulas and hearsays, contented enough to dwell there, this man could not
screen himself in formulas; he was alone with his own soul and the reality of
things. The great Mystery of Existence, as I said, glared in upon him, with its
terrors, with its splendors; no hearsays could hide that unspeakable fact,
"Here am I!" Such sincerity, as we named it, has in very truth something
of divine. The word of such a man is a Voice direct from Nature's own Heart.
Men do and must listen to that as to nothing else; all else is wind in
comparison. From of old, a thousand thoughts, in his pilgrimings and
wanderings, had been in this man: What am I? What is this unfathomable Thing I
live in, which men name Universe? What is Life; what is Death? What am I to
believe? What am I to do? The grim rocks of Mount Hara, of Mount Sinai, the
stern sandy solitudes answered not. The great Heaven rolling silent overhead,
with its blue-glancing stars, answered not. There was no answer. The man's own
soul, and what of God's inspiration dwelt there, had to answer! It is the thing
which all men have to ask themselves; which we too have to ask, and answer.
This wild man felt it to be of infinite moment; all other things of no moment
whatever in comparison. The jargon of argumentative Greek Sects, vague
traditions of Jews, the stupid routine of Arab Idolatry: there was no answer in
these. A Hero, as I repeat, has this first distinction, which indeed we may
call first and last, the Alpha and Omega of his whole Heroism, That he looks
through the shows of things into things. Use and wont, respectable hearsay,
respectable formula: all these are good, or are not good. There is something
behind and beyond all these, which all these must correspond with, be the image
of, or they are Idolatries; "bits of black wood pretending to be
God;" to the earnest soul a mockery and abomination. Idolatries never so gilded,
waited on by heads of the Koreish, will do nothing for this man. Though all men
walk by them, what good is it? The great Reality stands glaring there upon him.
He there has to answer it, or perish miserably. Now, even now, or else through
all Eternity never! Answer it; thou must find an answer. Ambition? What could
all Arabia do for this man; with the crown of Greek Heraclius, of Persian
Chosroes, and all crowns in the Earth; what could they all do for him? It was
not of the Earth he wanted to hear tell; it was of the Heaven above and of the
Hell beneath. All crowns and sovereignties whatsoever, where would they in a
few brief years be? To be Sheik of Mecca or Arabia, and have a bit of gilt wood
put into your hand, will that be one's salvation? I decidedly think, not. We
will leave it altogether, this impostor hypothesis, as not credible; not very
tolerable even, worthy chiefly of dismissal by us. Mahomet had been wont to
retire yearly, during the month Ramadhan, into solitude and silence; as indeed
was the Arab custom; a praiseworthy custom, which such a man, above all, would
find natural and useful. Communing with his own heart, in the silence of the
mountains; himself silent; open to the "small still voices:" it was a
right natural custom! Mahomet was in his fortieth year, when having withdrawn
to a cavern in Mount Hara, near Mecca, during this Ramadhan, to pass the month
in prayer, and meditation on those great questions, he one day told his wife
Kadijah, who with his household was with him or near him this year, That by the
unspeakable special favor of Heaven he had now found it all out; was in doubt
and darkness no longer, but saw it all. That all these Idols and Formulas were
nothing, miserable bits of wood; that there was One God in and over all; and we
must leave all Idols, and look to Him. That God is great; and that there is
nothing else great! He is the Reality. Wooden Idols are not real; He is real.
He made us at first, sustains us yet; we and all things are but the shadow of
Him; a transitory garment veiling the Eternal Splendor. "Allah akbar, God
is great;" and then also "Islam," That we must submit to God.
That our whole strength lies in resigned submission to Him, whatsoever He do to
us. For this world, and for the other! The thing He sends to us, were it death
and worse than death, shall be good, shall be best; we resign ourselves to God.
"If this be Islam," says Goethe, "do we not all live in
Islam?" Yes, all of us that have any moral life; we all live so. It has
ever been held the highest wisdom for a man not merely to submit to Necessity,
Necessity will make him submit, but to know and believe well that the stern
thing which Necessity had ordered was the wisest, the best, the thing wanted
there. To cease his frantic pretension of scanning this great God's-World in
his small fraction of a brain; to know that it had verily, though deep beyond
his soundings, a Just Law, that the soul of it was Good; that his part in it
was to conform to the Law of the Whole, and in devout silence follow that; not
questioning it, obeying it as unquestionable. I say, this is yet the only true
morality known. A man is right and invincible, virtuous and on the road towards
sure conquest, precisely while he joins himself to the great deep Law of the
World, in spite of all superficial laws, temporary appearances, profit-and-loss
calculations; he is victorious while he co-operates with that great central
Law, not victorious otherwise: and surely his first chance of co-operating
with it, or getting into the course of it, is to know with his whole soul that
it is; that it is good, and alone good! This is the soul of Islam; it is
properly the soul of Christianity; for Islam is definable as a confused form
of Christianity; had Christianity not been, neither had it been. Christianity
also commands us, before all, to be resigned to God. We are to take no counsel
with flesh and blood; give ear to no vain cavils, vain sorrows and wishes: to
know that we know nothing; that the worst and cruelest to our eyes is not what
it seems; that we have to receive whatsoever befalls us as sent from God above,
and say, It is good and wise, God is great! "Though He slay me, yet will I
trust in Him." Islam means in its way Denial of Self, Annihilation of
Self. This is yet the highest Wisdom that Heaven has revealed to our Earth.
Such light had come, as it could, to illuminate the darkness of this wild Arab
soul. A confused dazzling splendor as of life and Heaven, in the great darkness
which threatened to be death: he called it revelation and the angel Gabriel;
who of us yet can know what to call it? It is the "inspiration of the
Almighty" that giveth us understanding. To know; to get into the truth of
anything, is ever a mystic act, of which the best Logics can but babble on the
surface. "Is not Belief the true god-announcing Miracle?" says
Novalis. That Mahomet's whole soul, set in flame with this grand Truth
vouchsafed him, should feel as if it were important and the only important
thing, was very natural. That Providence had unspeakably honored him by
revealing it, saving him from death and darkness; that he therefore was bound
to make known the same to all creatures: this is what was meant by
"Mahomet is the Prophet of God;" this too is not without its true
meaning. The good Kadijah, we can fancy, listened to him with wonder, with
doubt: at length she answered: Yes, it was true this that he said. One can
fancy too the boundless gratitude of Mahomet; and how of all the kindnesses she
had done him, this of believing the earnest struggling word he now spoke was
the greatest. "It is certain," says Novalis, "my Conviction
gains infinitely, the moment another soul will believe in it." It is a
boundless favor. He never forgot this good Kadijah. Long afterwards, Ayesha
his young favorite wife, a woman who indeed distinguished herself among the
Moslem, by all manner of qualities, through her whole long life; this young
brilliant Ayesha was, one day, questioning him: "Now am not I better than
Kadijah? She was a widow; old, and had lost her looks: you love me better than
you did her?" " No, by Allah!" answered Mahomet: "No, by
Allah! She believed in me when none else would believe. In the whole world I
had but one friend, and she was that!" Seid, his Slave, also believed in
him; these with his young Cousin Ali, Abu Thaleb's son, were his first
converts. He spoke of his Doctrine to this man and that; but the most treated
it with ridicule, with indifference; in three years, I think, he had gained but
thirteen followers. His progress was slow enough. His encouragement to go on,
was altogether the usual encouragement that such a man in such a case meets.
After some three years of small success, he invited forty of his chief kindred
to an entertainment; and there stood up and told them what his pretension was: that
he had this thing to promulgate abroad to all men; that it was the highest
thing, the one thing: which of them would second him in that? Amid the doubt
and silence of all, young Ali, as yet a lad of sixteen, impatient of the
silence, started up, and exclaimed in passionate fierce language, That he
would! The assembly, among whom was Abu Thaleb, Ali's Father, could not be
unfriendly to Mahomet; yet the sight there, of one unlettered elderly man, with
a lad of sixteen, deciding on such an enterprise against all mankind, appeared
ridiculous to them; the assembly broke up in laughter. Nevertheless it proved
not a laughable thing; it was a very serious thing! As for this young Ali, one
cannot but like him. A noble-minded creature, as he shows himself, now and
always afterwards; full of affection, of fiery daring. Something chivalrous in
him; brave as a lion; yet with a grace, a truth and affection worthy of
Christian knighthood. He died by assassination in the Mosque at Bagdad; a death
occasioned by his own generous fairness, confidence in the fairness of others:
he said, If the wound proved not unto death, they must pardon the Assassin; but
if it did, then they must slay him straightway, that so they two in the same
hour might appear before God, and see which side of that quarrel was the just
one! Mahomet naturally gave offence to the Koreish, Keepers of the Caabah,
superintendents of the Idols. One or two men of influence had joined him: the
thing spread slowly, but it was spreading. Naturally he gave offence to
everybody: Who is this that pretends to be wiser than we all; that rebukes us
all, as mere fools and worshippers of wood! Abu Thaleb the good Uncle spoke
with him: Could he not be silent about all that; believe it all for himself,
and not trouble others, anger the chief men, endanger himself and them all,
talking of it? Mahomet answered: If the Sun stood on his right hand and the
Moon on his left, ordering him to hold his peace, he could not obey! No: there
was something in this Truth he had got which was of Nature herself; equal in
rank to Sun, or Moon, or whatsoever thing Nature had made. It would speak
itself there, so long as the Almighty allowed it, in spite of Sun and Moon, and
all Koreish and all men and things. It must do that, and could do no other.
Mahomet answered so; and, they say, "burst into tears." Burst into
tears: he felt that Abu Thaleb was good to him; that the task he had got was no
soft, but a stern and great one. He went on speaking to who would listen to
him; publishing his Doctrine among the pilgrims as they came to Mecca; gaining
adherents in this place and that. Continual contradiction, hatred, open or
secret danger attended him. His powerful relations protected Mahomet himself;
but by and by, on his own advice, all his adherents had to quit Mecca, and seek
refuge in Abyssinia over the sea. The Koreish grew ever angrier; laid plots,
and swore oaths among them, to put Mahomet to death with their own hands. Abu
Thaleb was dead, the good Kadijah was dead. Mahomet is not solicitous of sympathy
from us; but his outlook at this time was one of the dismalest. He had to hide
in caverns, escape in disguise; fly hither and thither; homeless, in continual
peril of his life. More than once it seemed all over with him; more than once
it turned on a straw, some rider's horse taking fright or the like, whether
Mahomet and his Doctrine had not ended there, and not been heard of at all. But
it was not to end so. In the thirteenth year of his mission, finding his
enemies all banded against him, forty sworn men, one out of every tribe,
waiting to take his life, and no continuance possible at Mecca for him any
longer, Mahomet fled to the place then called Yathreb, where he had gained some
adherents; the place they now call Medina, or "Medinat al Nabi, the City
of the Prophet," from that circumstance. It lay some two hundred miles
off, through rocks and deserts; not without great difficulty, in such mood as
we may fancy, he escaped thither, and found welcome. The whole East dates its
era from this Flight, hegira as they name it: the Year 1 of this Hegira is 622
of our Era, the fifty-third of Mahomet's life. He was now becoming an old man;
his friends sinking round him one by one; his path desolate, encompassed with
danger: unless he could find hope in his own heart, the outward face of things
was but hopeless for him. It is so with all men in the like case. Hitherto
Mahomet had professed to publish his Religion by the way of preaching and
persuasion alone. But now, driven foully out of his native country, since
unjust men had not only given no ear to his earnest Heaven's-message, the deep
cry of his heart, but would not even let him live if he kept speaking it, the
wild Son of the Desert resolved to defend himself, like a man and Arab. If the
Koreish will have it so, they shall have it. Tidings, felt to be of infinite
moment to them and all men, they would not listen to these; would trample them
down by sheer violence, steel and murder: well, let steel try it then! Ten
years more this Mahomet had; all of fighting of breathless impetuous toil and
struggle; with what result we know. Much has been said of Mahomet's propagating
his Religion by the sword. It is no doubt far nobler what we have to boast of
the Christian Religion, that it propagated itself peaceably in the way of
preaching and conviction. Yet withal, if we take this for an argument of the
truth or falsehood of a religion, there is a radical mistake in it. The sword
indeed: but where will you get your sword! Every new opinion, at its starting,
is precisely in a minority of one. In one man's head alone, there it dwells as
yet. One man alone of the whole world believes it; there is one man against all
men. That he take a sword, and try to propagate with that, will do little for
him. You must first get your sword! On the whole, a thing will propagate itself
as it can. We do not find, of the Christian Religion either, that it always
disdained the sword, when once it had got one. Charlemagne's conversion of the
Saxons was not by preaching. I care little about the sword: I will allow a
thing to struggle for itself in this world, with any sword or tongue or
implement it has, or can lay hold of. We will let it preach, and pamphleteer,
and fight, and to the uttermost bestir itself, and do, beak and claws, whatsoever
is in it; very sure that it will, in the long-run, conquer nothing which does
not deserve to be conquered. What is better than itself, it cannot put away,
but only what is worse. In this great Duel, Nature herself is umpire, and can
do no wrong: the thing which is deepest-rooted in Nature, what we call truest,
that thing and not the other will be found growing at last. Here however, in
reference to much that there is in Mahomet and his success, we are to remember
what an umpire Nature is; what a greatness, composure of depth and tolerance
there is in her. You take wheat to cast into the Earth's bosom; your wheat may
be mixed with chaff, chopped straw, barn-sweepings, dust and all imaginable
rubbish; no matter: you cast it into the kind just Earth; she grows the wheat,
the whole rubbish she silently absorbs, shrouds it in, says nothing of the
rubbish. The yellow wheat is growing there; the good Earth is silent about all
the rest, has silently turned all the rest to some benefit too, and makes no
complaint about it! So everywhere in Nature! She is true and not a lie; and yet
so great, and just, and motherly in her truth. She requires of a thing only
that it be genuine of heart; she will protect it if so; will not, if not so.
There is a soul of truth in all the things she ever gave harbor to. Alas, is
not this the history of all highest Truth that comes or ever came into the
world? The body of them all is imperfection, an element of light in darkness:
to us they have to come embodied in mere Logic, in some merely scientific
Theorem of the Universe; which cannot be complete; which cannot but be found,
one day, incomplete, erroneous, and so die and disappear. The body of all Truth
dies; and yet in all, I say, there is a soul which never dies; which in new and
ever-nobler embodiment lives immortal as man himself! It is the way with
Nature. The genuine essence of Truth never dies. That it be genuine, a voice
from the great Deep of Nature, there is the point at Nature's judgment-seat.
What we call pure or impure, is not with her the final question. Not how much
chaff is in you; but whether you have any wheat. Pure? I might say to many a
man: Yes, you are pure; pure enough; but you are chaff, insincere hypothesis,
hearsay, formality; you never were in contact with the great heart of the
Universe at all; you are properly neither pure nor impure; you are nothing,
Nature has no business with you. Mahomet's Creed we called a kind of
Christianity; and really, if we look at the wild rapt earnestness with which it
was believed and laid to heart, I should say a better kind than that of those
miserable Syrian Sects, with their vain janglings about Homoiousion and
Homoousion, the head full of worthless noise, the heart empty and dead! The
truth of it is embedded in portentous error and falsehood; but the truth of it
makes it be believed, not the falsehood: it succeeded by its truth. A bastard
kind of Christianity, but a living kind; with a heart-life in it; not dead,
chopping barren logic merely! Out of all that rubbish of Arab idolatries,
argumentative theologies, traditions, subtleties, rumors and hypotheses of
Greeks and Jews, with their idle wire-drawings, this wild man of the Desert,
with his wild sincere heart, earnest as death and life, with his great flashing
natural eyesight, had seen into the kernel of the matter. Idolatry is nothing:
these Wooden Idols of yours, "ye rub them with oil and wax, and the flies
stick on them," these are wood, I tell you! They can do nothing for you;
they are an impotent blasphemous presence; a horror and abomination, if ye knew
them. God alone is; God alone has power; He made us, He can kill us and keep us
alive: "Allah akbar, God is great." Understand that His will is the
best for you; that howsoever sore to flesh and blood, you will find it the
wisest, best: you are bound to take it so; in this world and in the next, you
have no other thing that you can do! And now if the wild idolatrous men did
believe this, and with their fiery hearts lay hold of it to do it, in what form
soever it came to them, I say it was well worthy of being believed. In one form
or the other, I say it is still the one thing worthy of being believed by all
men. Man does hereby become the high-priest of this Temple of a World. He is in
harmony with the Decrees of the Author of this World; cooperating with them,
not vainly withstanding them: I know, to this day, no better definition of Duty
than that same. All that is right includes itself in this of co-operating with
the real Tendency of the World: you succeed by this (the World's Tendency will
succeed), you are good, and in the right course there. Homoiousion, Homoousion,
vain logical jangle, then or before or at any time, may jangle itself out, and
go whither and how it likes: this is the thing it all struggles to mean, if it
would mean anything. If it do not succeed in meaning this, it means nothing.
Not that Abstractions, logical Propositions, be correctly worded or
incorrectly; but that living concrete Sons of Adam do lay this to heart: that
is the important point. Islam devoured all these vain jangling Sects; and I
think had right to do so. It was a Reality, direct from the great Heart of
Nature once more. Arab idolatries, Syrian formulas, whatsoever was not equally
real, had to go up in flame, mere dead fuel, in various senses, for this which
was fire.
It was during these wild
warfarings and strugglings, especially after the Flight to Mecca, that Mahomet
dictated at intervals his Sacred Book, which they name Koran, or Reading,
"Thing to be read." This is the Work he and his disciples made so
much of, asking all the world, Is not that a miracle? The Mahometans regard
their Koran with a reverence which few Christians pay even to their Bible. It
is admitted every where as the standard of all law and all practice; the thing
to be gone upon in speculation and life; the message sent direct out of Heaven,
which this Earth has to conform to, and walk by; the thing to be read. Their
Judges decide by it; all Moslem are bound to study it, seek in it for the light
of their life. They have mosques where it is all read daily; thirty relays of
priests take it up in succession, get through the whole each day. There, for
twelve hundred years, has the voice of this Book, at all moments, kept sounding
through the ears and the hearts of so many men. We hear of Mahometan Doctors
that had read it seventy thousand times! Very curious: if one sought for
"discrepancies of national taste," here surely were the most eminent
instance of that! We also can read the Koran; our Translation of it, by Sale,
is known to be a very fair one. I must say, it is as toilsome reading as I ever
undertook. A wearisome confused jumble, crude, incondite; endless iterations,
long-windedness, entanglement; most crude, incondite; insupportable stupidity,
in short! Nothing but a sense of duty could carry any European through the
Koran. We read in it, as we might in the State-Paper Office, unreadable masses
of lumber, that perhaps we may get some glimpses of a remarkable man. It is
true we have it under disadvantages: the Arabs see more method in it than we.
Mahomet's followers found the Koran lying all in fractions, as it had been
written down at first promulgation; much of it, they say, on shoulder-blades of
mutton, flung pell-mell into a chest: and they published it, without any
discoverable order as to time or otherwise; merely trying, as would seem, and
this not very strictly, to put the longest chapters first. The real beginning
of it, in that way, lies almost at the end: for the earliest portions were the
shortest. Read in its historical sequence it perhaps would not be so bad. Much
of it, too, they say, is rhythmic; a kind of wild chanting song, in the
original. This may be a great point; much perhaps has been lost in the
Translation here. Yet with every allowance, one feels it difficult to see how
any mortal ever could consider this Koran as a Book written in Heaven, too good
for the Earth; as a well-written book, or indeed as a book at all; and not a
bewildered rhapsody; written, so far as writing goes, as badly as almost any
book ever was! So much for national discrepancies, and the standard of taste.
Yet I should say, it was not unintelligible how the Arabs might so love it.
When once you get this confused coil of a Koran fairly off your hands, and have
it behind you at a distance, the essential type of it begins to disclose
itself; and in this there is a merit quite other than the literary one. If a
book come from the heart, it will contrive to reach other hearts; all art and
author-craft are of small amount to that. One would say the primary character
of the Koran is this of its genuineness, of its being a bona-fide book.
Prideaux, I know, and others have represented it as a mere bundle of
juggleries; chapter after chapter got up to excuse and varnish the author's
successive sins, forward his ambitions and quackeries: but really it is time to
dismiss all that. I do not assert Mahomet's continual sincerity: who is
continually sincere? But I confess I can make nothing of the critic, in these
times, who would accuse him of deceit prepense; of conscious deceit generally,
or perhaps at all; still more, of living in a mere element of conscious
deceit, and writing this Koran as a forger and juggler would have done! Every
candid eye, I think, will read the Koran far otherwise than so. It is the
confused ferment of a great rude human soul; rude, untutored, that cannot even
read; but fervent, earnest, struggling vehemently to utter itself in words.
With a kind of breathless intensity he strives to utter himself; the thoughts crowd
on him pell-mell: for very multitude of things to say, he can get nothing said.
The meaning that is in him shapes itself into no form of composition, is stated
in no sequence, method, or coherence; they are not shaped at all, these
thoughts of his; flung out unshaped, as they struggle and tumble there, in
their chaotic inarticulate state. We said "stupid:" yet natural
stupidity is by no means the character of Mahomet's Book; it is natural
uncultivation rather. The man has not studied speaking; in the haste and
pressure of continual fighting, has not time to mature himself into fit speech.
The panting breathless haste and vehemence of a man struggling in the thick of
battle for life and salvation; this is the mood he is in! A headlong haste; for
very magnitude of meaning, he cannot get himself articulated into words. The
successive utterances of a soul in that mood, colored by the various
vicissitudes of three-and-twenty years; now well uttered, now worse: this is
the Koran. For we are to consider Mahomet, through these three-and-twenty
years, as the centre of a world wholly in conflict. Battles with the Koreish
and Heathen, quarrels among his own people, backslidings of his own wild heart;
all this kept him in a perpetual whirl, his soul knowing rest no more. In
wakeful nights, as one may fancy, the wild soul of the man, tossing amid these
vortices, would hail any light of a decision for them as a veritable light from
Heaven; any making-up of his mind, so blessed, indispensable for him there,
would seem the inspiration of a Gabriel. Forger and juggler? No, no! This great
fiery heart, seething, simmering like a great furnace of thoughts, was not a
juggler's. His Life was a Fact to him; this God's Universe an awful Fact and
Reality. He has faults enough. The man was an uncultured semi-barbarous Son of
Nature, much of the Bedouin still clinging to him: we must take him for that.
But for a wretched Simulacrum, a hungry Impostor without eyes or heart,
practicing for a mess of pottage such blasphemous swindlery, forgery of
celestial documents, continual high-treason against his Maker and Self, we will
not and cannot take him. Sincerity, in all senses, seems to me the merit of the
Koran; what had rendered it precious to the wild Arab men. It is, after all,
the first and last merit in a book; gives rise to merits of all kinds, nay, at
bottom, it alone can give rise to merit of any kind. Curiously, through these
incondite masses of tradition, vituperation, complaint, ejaculation in the
Koran, a vein of true direct insight, of what we might almost call poetry, is
found straggling. The body of the Book is made up of mere tradition, and as it
were vehement enthusiastic extempore preaching. He returns forever to the old
stories of the Prophets as they went current in the Arab memory: how Prophet
after Prophet, the Prophet Abraham, the Prophet Hud, the Prophet Moses,
Christian and other real and fabulous Prophets, had come to this Tribe and to
that, warning men of their sin; and been received by them even as he Mahomet was,
which is a great solace to him. These things he repeats ten, perhaps twenty
times; again and ever again, with wearisome iteration; has never done repeating
them. A brave Samuel Johnson, in his forlorn garret, might con over the
Biographies of Authors in that way! This is the great staple of the Koran. But
curiously, through all this, comes ever and anon some glance as of the real
thinker and seer. He has actually an eye for the world, this Mahomet: with a
certain directness and rugged vigor, he brings home still, to our heart, the
thing his own heart has been opened to. I make but little of his praises of
Allah, which many praise; they are borrowed I suppose mainly from the Hebrew,
at least they are far surpassed there. But the eye that flashes direct into the
heart of things, and sees the truth of them; this is to me a highly interesting
object. Great Nature's own gift; which she bestows on all; but which only one
in the thousand does not cast sorrowfully away: it is what I call sincerity of
vision; the test of a sincere heart. Mahomet can work no miracles; he often
answers impatiently: I can work no miracles. I? "I am a Public
Preacher;" appointed to preach this doctrine to all creatures. Yet the
world, as we can see, had really from of old been all one great miracle to him.
Look over the world, says he; is it not wonderful, the work of Allah; wholly
"a sign to you," if your eyes were open! This Earth, God made it for
you; "appointed paths in it;" you can live in it, go to and fro on it.
The clouds in the dry country of Arabia, to Mahomet they are very wonderful:
Great clouds, he says, born in the deep bosom of the Upper Immensity, where do
they come from! They hang there, the great black monsters; pour down their
rain-deluges "to revive a dead earth," and grass springs, and
"tall leafy palm-trees with their date-clusters hanging round. Is not that
a sign?" Your cattle too, Allah made them; serviceable dumb creatures;
they change the grass into milk; you have your clothing from them, very strange
creatures; they come ranking home at evening-time, "and," adds he,
"and are a credit to you!" Ships also, he talks often about ships:
Huge moving mountains, they spread out their cloth wings, go bounding through
the water there, Heaven's wind driving them; anon they lie motionless, God has
withdrawn the wind, they lie dead, and cannot stir! Miracles? cries he: What
miracle would you have? Are not you yourselves there? God made you,
"shaped you out of a little clay." Ye were small once; a few years
ago ye were not at all. Ye have beauty, strength, thoughts, "ye have
compassion on one another." Old age comes on you, and gray hairs; your
strength fades into feebleness; ye sink down, and again are not. "Ye have
compassion on one another:" this struck me much: Allah might have made you
having no compassion on one another, how had it been then! This is a great
direct thought, a glance at first-hand into the very fact of things. Rude
vestiges of poetic genius, of whatsoever is best and truest, are visible in
this man. A strong untutored intellect; eyesight, heart: a strong wild man,
might have shaped himself into Poet, King, Priest, any kind of Hero. To his
eyes it is forever clear that this world wholly is miraculous. He sees what, as
we said once before, all great thinkers, the rude Scandinavians themselves, in
one way or other, have contrived to see: That this so solid-looking material
world is, at bottom, in very deed, Nothing; is a visual and factual
Manifestation of God's power and presence, a shadow hung out by Him on the
bosom of the void Infinite; nothing more. The mountains, he says, these great
rock-mountains, they shall dissipate themselves "like clouds;" melt
into the Blue as clouds do, and not be! He figures the Earth, in the Arab
fashion, Sale tells us, as an immense Plain or flat Plate of ground, the
mountains are set on that to steady it. At the Last Day they shall disappear
"like clouds;" the whole Earth shall go spinning, whirl itself off
into wreck, and as dust and vapor vanish in the Inane. Allah withdraws his hand
from it, and it ceases to be. The universal empire of Allah, presence
everywhere of an unspeakable Power, a Splendor, and a Terror not to be named,
as the true force, essence and reality, in all things whatsoever, was
continually clear to this man. What a modern talks of by the name, Forces of
Nature, Laws of Nature; and does not figure as a divine thing; not even as one
thing at all, but as a set of things, undivine enough, salable, curious, good
for propelling steamships! With our Sciences and Cyclopaedias, we are apt to
forget the divineness, in those laboratories of ours. We ought not to forget
it! That once well forgotten, I know not what else were worth remembering. Most
sciences, I think were then a very dead thing; withered, contentious, empty; a
thistle in late autumn. The best science, without this, is but as the dead
timber; it is not the growing tree and forest, which gives ever-new timber,
among other things! Man cannot know either, unless he can worship in some way.
His knowledge is a pedantry, and dead thistle, otherwise. Much has been said
and written about the sensuality of Mahomet's Religion; more than was just. The
indulgences, criminal to us, which he permitted, were not of his appointment;
he found them practiced, unquestioned from immemorial time in Arabia; what he
did was to curtail them, restrict them, not on one but on many sides. His
Religion is not an easy one: with rigorous fasts, lavations, strict complex
formulas, prayers five times a day, and abstinence from wine, it did not
"succeed by being an easy religion." As if indeed any religion, or
cause holding of religion, could succeed by that! It is a calumny on men to say
that they are roused to heroic action by ease, hope of pleasure, recompense,
sugar-plums of any kind, in this world or the next! In the meanest mortal
there lies something nobler. The poor swearing soldier, hired to be shot, has
his "honor of a soldier," different from drill-regulations and the
shilling a day. It is not to taste sweet things, but to do noble and true
things, and vindicate himself under God's Heaven as a god-made Man, that the
poorest son of Adam dimly longs. Show him the way of doing that, the dullest
day-drudge kindles into a hero. They wrong man greatly who say he is to be
seduced by ease. Difficulty, abnegation, martyrdom, death are the allurements
that act on the heart of man. Kindle the inner genial life of him, you have a
flame that burns up all lower considerations. Not happiness, but something
higher: one sees this even in the frivolous classes, with their "point of
honor" and the like. Not by flattering our appetites; no, by awakening the
Heroic that slumbers in every heart, can any Religion gain followers. Mahomet
himself, after all that can be said about him, was not a sensual man. We shall
err widely if we consider this man as a common voluptuary, intent mainly on
base enjoyments, nay on enjoyments of any kind. His household was of the
frugalest; his common diet barley-bread and water: sometimes for months there
was not a fire once lighted on his hearth. They record with just pride that he
would mend his own shoes, patch his own cloak. A poor, hard-toiling,
ill-provided man; careless of what vulgar men toil for. Not a bad man, I should
say; something better in him than hunger of any sort, or these wild Arab men,
fighting and jostling three-and-twenty years at his hand, in close contact with
him always, would not have reverenced him so! They were wild men, bursting ever
and anon into quarrel, into all kinds of fierce sincerity; without right worth
and manhood, no man could have commanded them. They called him Prophet, you
say? Why, he stood there face to face with them; bare, not enshrined in any
mystery; visibly clouting his own cloak, cobbling his own shoes; fighting,
counselling, ordering in the midst of them: they must have seen what kind of a
man he was, let him be called what you like! No emperor with his tiaras was
obeyed as this man in a cloak of his own clouting. During three-and-twenty
years of rough actual trial. I find something of a veritable Hero necessary for
that, of itself. His last words are a prayer; broken ejaculations of a heart
struggling up, in trembling hope, towards its Maker. We cannot say that his
religion made him worse; it made him better; good, not bad. Generous things are
recorded of him: when he lost his Daughter, the thing he answers is, in his own
dialect, every way sincere, and yet equivalent to that of Christians, "The
Lord giveth, and the Lord taketh away; blessed be the name of the Lord."
He answered in like manner of Seid, his emancipated well-beloved Slave, the
second of the believers. Seid had fallen in the War of Tabuc, the first of
Mahomet's fightings with the Greeks. Mahomet said, It was well; Seid had done
his Master's work, Seid had now gone to his Master: it was all well with Seid.
Yet Seid's daughter found him weeping over the body; the old gray-haired man
melting in tears! "What do I see?" said she. "You see a friend
weeping over his friend." He went out for the last time into the mosque,
two days before his death; asked, If he had injured any man? Let his own back
bear the stripes. If he owed any man? A voice answered, "Yes, me three
drachms," borrowed on such an occasion. Mahomet ordered them to be paid:
"Better be in shame now," said he, "than at the Day of
Judgment." You remember Kadijah, and the "No, by Allah!" Traits
of that kind show us the genuine man, the brother of us all, brought visible
through twelve centuries, the veritable Son of our common Mother. Withal I
like Mahomet for his total freedom from cant. He is a rough self-helping son of
the wilderness; does not pretend to be what he is not. There is no ostentatious
pride in him; but neither does he go much upon humility: he is there as he can
be, in cloak and shoes of his own clouting; speaks plainly to all manner of
Persian Kings, Greek Emperors, what it is they are bound to do; knows well
enough, about himself, "the respect due unto thee." In a
life-and-death war with Bedouins, cruel things could not fail; but neither are
acts of mercy, of noble natural pity and generosity wanting. Mahomet makes no
apology for the one, no boast of the other. They were each the free dictate of
his heart; each called for, there and then. Not a mealy-mouthed man! A candid
ferocity, if the case call for it, is in him; he does not mince matters! The
War of Tabuc is a thing he often speaks of: his men refused, many of them, to
march on that occasion; pleaded the heat of the weather, the harvest, and so
forth; he can never forget that. Your harvest? It lasts for a day. What will
become of your harvest through all Eternity? Hot weather? Yes, it was hot;
"but Hell will be hotter!" Sometimes a rough sarcasm turns up: He
says to the unbelievers, Ye shall have the just measure of your deeds at that
Great Day. They will be weighed out to you; ye shall not have short weight!
Everywhere he fixes the matter in his eye; he sees it: his heart, now and
then, is as if struck dumb by the greatness of it. "Assuredly," he
says: that word, in the Koran, is written down sometimes as a sentence by
itself: "Assuredly." No Dilettantism in this Mahomet; it is a
business of Reprobation and Salvation with him, of Time and Eternity: he is in
deadly earnest about it! Dilettantism, hypothesis, speculation, a kind of
amateur-search for Truth, toying and coquetting with Truth: this is the sorest
sin. The root of all other imaginable sins. It consists in the heart and soul
of the man never having been open to Truth; "living in a vain show."
Such a man not only utters and produces falsehoods, but is himself a falsehood.
The rational moral principle, spark of the Divinity, is sunk deep in him, in
quiet paralysis of life-death. The very falsehoods of Mahomet are truer than
the truths of such a man. He is the insincere man: smooth-polished, respectable
in some times and places; inoffensive, says nothing harsh to anybody; most
cleanly, just as carbonic acid is, which is death and poison. We will not
praise Mahomet's moral precepts as always of the superfinest sort; yet it can
be said that there is always a tendency to good in them; that they are the true
dictates of a heart aiming towards what is just and true. The sublime
forgiveness of Christianity, turning of the other cheek when the one has been
smitten, is not here: you are to revenge yourself, but it is to be in measure,
not overmuch, or beyond justice. On the other hand, Islam, like any great
Faith, and insight into the essence of man, is a perfect equalizer of men: the
soul of one believer outweighs all earthly kingships; all men, according to
Islam too, are equal. Mahomet insists not on the propriety of giving alms, but
on the necessity of it: he marks down by law how much you are to give, and it
is at your peril if you neglect. The tenth part of a man's annual income, whatever
that may be, is the property of the poor, of those that are afflicted and need
help. Good all this: the natural voice of humanity, of pity and equity dwelling
in the heart of this wild Son of Nature speaks so. Mahomet's Paradise is
sensual, his Hell sensual: true; in the one and the other there is enough that
shocks all spiritual feeling in us. But we are to recollect that the Arabs
already had it so; that Mahomet, in whatever he changed of it, softened and
diminished all this. The worst sensualities, too, are the work of doctors,
followers of his, not his work. In the Koran there is really very little said
about the joys of Paradise; they are intimated rather than insisted on. Nor is
it forgotten that the highest joys even there shall be spiritual; the pure
Presence of the Highest, this shall infinitely transcend all other joys. He
says, "Your salutation shall be, Peace." Salam, Have Peace! the
thing that all rational souls long for, and seek, vainly here below, as the one
blessing. "Ye shall sit on seats, facing one another: all grudges shall be
taken away out of your hearts." All grudges! Ye shall love one another
freely; for each of you, in the eyes of his brothers, there will be Heaven
enough! In reference to this of the sensual Paradise and Mahomet's sensuality,
the sorest chapter of all for us, there were many things to be said; which it
is not convenient to enter upon here. Two remarks only I shall make, and
therewith leave it to your candor. The first is furnished me by Goethe; it is a
casual hint of his which seems well worth taking note of. In one of his
Delineations, in Meister's Travels it is, the hero comes upon a Society of men
with very strange ways, one of which was this: "We require," says the
Master, "that each of our people shall restrict himself in one
direction," shall go right against his desire in one matter, and make
himself do the thing he does not wish, "should we allow him the greater
latitude on all other sides." There seems to me a great justness in this.
Enjoying things which are pleasant; that is not the evil: it is the reducing of
our moral self to slavery by them that is. Let a man assert withal that he is
king over his habitudes; that he could and would shake them off, on cause
shown: this is an excellent law. The Month Ramadhan for the Moslem, much in
Mahomet's Religion, much in his own Life, bears in that direction; if not by
forethought, or clear purpose of moral improvement on his part, then by a
certain healthy manful instinct, which is as good. But there is another thing to
be said about the Mahometan Heaven and Hell. This namely, that, however gross
and material they may be, they are an emblem of an everlasting truth, not
always so well remembered elsewhere. That gross sensual Paradise of his; that
horrible flaming Hell; the great enormous Day of Judgment he perpetually
insists on: what is all this but a rude shadow, in the rude Bedouin
imagination, of that grand spiritual Fact, and Beginning of Facts, which it is
ill for us too if we do not all know and feel: the Infinite Nature of Duty?
That man's actions here are of infinite moment to him, and never die or end at
all; that man, with his little life, reaches upwards high as Heaven, downwards
low as Hell, and in his threescore years of Time holds an Eternity fearfully and
wonderfully hidden: all this had burnt itself, as in flame-characters, into the
wild Arab soul. As in flame and lightning, it stands written there; awful,
unspeakable, ever present to him. With bursting earnestness, with a fierce
savage sincerity, half-articulating, not able to articulate, he strives to
speak it, bodies it forth in that Heaven and that Hell. Bodied forth in what
way you will, it is the first of all truths. It is venerable under all
embodiments. What is the chief end of man here below? Mahomet has answered this
question, in a way that might put some of us to shame! He does not, like a
Bentham, a Paley, take Right and Wrong, and calculate the profit and loss,
ultimate pleasure of the one and of the other; and summing all up by addition
and subtraction into a net result, ask you, Whether on the whole the Right does
not preponderate considerably? No; it is not better to do the one than the
other; the one is to the other as life is to death, as Heaven is to Hell. The
one must in nowise be done, the other in nowise left undone. You shall not
measure them; they are incommensurable: the one is death eternal to a man, the
other is life eternal. Benthamee Utility, virtue by Profit and Loss; reducing
this God's-world to a dead brute Steam-engine, the infinite celestial Soul of
Man to a kind of Hay-balance for weighing hay and thistles on, pleasures and
pains on: If you ask me which gives, Mahomet or they, the beggarlier and
falser view of Man and his Destinies in this Universe, I will answer, it is not
Mahomet! On the whole, we will repeat that this Religion of Mahomet's is a
kind of Christianity; has a genuine element of what is spiritually highest
looking through it, not to be hidden by all its imperfections. The Scandinavian
God Wish, the god of all rude men, this has been enlarged into a Heaven by
Mahomet; but a Heaven symbolical of sacred Duty, and to be earned by faith and
well-doing, by valiant action, and a divine patience which is still more
valiant. It is Scandinavian Paganism, and a truly celestial element superadded
to that. Call it not false; look not at the falsehood of it, look at the truth
of it. For these twelve centuries, it has been the religion and life-guidance
of the fifth part of the whole kindred of Mankind. Above all things, it has
been a religion heartily believed. These Arabs believe their religion, and try
to live by it! No Christians, since the early ages, or only perhaps the English
Puritans in modern times, have ever stood by their Faith as the Moslem do by
theirs, believing it wholly, fronting Time with it, and Eternity with it. This
night the watchman on the streets of Cairo when he cries, "Who goes?
" will hear from the passenger, along with his answer, "There is no
God but God." Allah akbar, Islam, sounds through the souls, and whole
daily existence, of these dusky millions. Zealous missionaries preach it abroad
among Malays, black Papuans, brutal Idolaters; displacing what is worse,
nothing that is better or good. To the Arab Nation it was as a birth from
darkness into light; Arabia first became alive by means of it. A poor shepherd
people, roaming unnoticed in its deserts since the creation of the world: a
Hero-Prophet was sent down to them with a word they could believe: see, the
unnoticed becomes world-notable, the small has grown world-great; within one
century afterwards, Arabia is at Grenada on this hand, at Delhi on that;
glancing in valor and splendor and the light of genius, Arabia shines through
long ages over a great section of the world. Belief is great, life-giving. The
history of a Nation becomes fruitful, soul-elevating, great, so soon as it
believes. These Arabs, the man Mahomet, and that one century, is it not as if
a spark had fallen, one spark, on a world of what seemed black unnoticeable
sand; but lo, the sand proves explosive powder, blazes heaven-high from Delhi
to Grenada! I said, the Great Man was always as lightning out of Heaven; the
rest of men waited for him like fuel, and then they too would flame.
|
[May 12, 1840.] Lecture III. The Hero As Poet.
Dante: Shakspeare. The Hero as Divinity, the Hero as Prophet, are
productions of old ages; not to be repeated in the new. They presuppose a
certain rudeness of conception, which the progress of mere scientific
knowledge puts an end to. There needs to be, as it were, a world vacant, or
almost vacant of scientific forms, if men in their loving wonder are to fancy
their fellow-man either a god or one speaking with the voice of a god.
Divinity and Prophet are past. We are now to see our Hero in the less
ambitious, but also less questionable, character of Poet; a character which
does not pass. The Poet is a heroic figure belonging to all ages; whom all
ages possess, when once he is produced, whom the newest age as the oldest may
produce; and will produce, always when Nature pleases. Let Nature send a
Hero-soul; in no age is it other than possible that he may be shaped into a
Poet. Hero, Prophet, Poet, many different names, in different times, and
places, do we give to Great Men; according to varieties we note in them,
according to the sphere in which they have displayed themselves! We might
give many more names, on this same principle. I will remark again, however,
as a fact not unimportant to be understood, that the different sphere
constitutes the grand origin of such distinction; that the Hero can be Poet,
Prophet, King, Priest or what you will, according to the kind of world he
finds himself born into. I confess, I have no notion of a truly great man
that could not be all sorts of men. The Poet who could merely sit on a chair,
and compose stanzas, would never make a stanza worth much. He could not sing
the Heroic warrior, unless he himself were at least a Heroic warrior too. I
fancy there is in him the Politician, the Thinker, Legislator, Philosopher;
in one or the other degree, he could have been, he is all these. So too I
cannot understand how a Mirabeau, with that great glowing heart, with the
fire that was in it, with the bursting tears that were in it, could not have
written verses, tragedies, poems, and touched all hearts in that way, had his
course of life and education led him thitherward. The grand fundamental
character is that of Great Man; that the man be great. Napoleon has words in
him which are like Austerlitz Battles. Louis Fourteenth's Marshals are a kind
of poetical men withal; the things Turenne says are full of sagacity and
geniality, like sayings of Samuel Johnson. The great heart, the clear
deep-seeing eye: there it lies; no man whatever, in what province soever, can
prosper at all without these. Petrarch and Boccaccio did diplomatic messages,
it seems, quite well: one can easily believe it; they had done things a little
harder than these! Burns, a gifted song-writer, might have made a still
better Mirabeau. Shakspeare, one knows not what he could not have made, in
the supreme degree. True, there are aptitudes of Nature too. Nature does not
make all great men, more than all other men, in the self-same mould.
Varieties of aptitude doubtless; but infinitely more of circumstance; and far
oftenest it is the latter only that are looked to. But it is as with common
men in the learning of trades. You take any man, as yet a vague capability of
a man, who could be any kind of craftsman; and make him into a smith, a
carpenter, a mason: he is then and thenceforth that and nothing else. And if,
as Addison complains, you sometimes see a street-porter, staggering under his
load on spindle-shanks, and near at hand a tailor with the frame of a Samson
handling a bit of cloth and small Whitechapel needle, it cannot be
considered that aptitude of Nature alone has been consulted here either! The
Great Man also, to what shall he be bound apprentice? Given your Hero, is he
to become Conqueror, King, Philosopher, Poet? It is an inexplicably complex
controversial-calculation between the world and him! He will read the world
and its laws; the world with its laws will be there to be read. What the world,
on this matter, shall permit and bid is, as we said, the most important fact
about the world. Poet and Prophet differ greatly in our loose modern notions
of them. In some old languages, again, the titles are synonymous; Vates means
both Prophet and Poet: and indeed at all times, Prophet and Poet, well
understood, have much kindred of meaning. Fundamentally indeed they are still
the same; in this most important respect especially, That they have
penetrated both of them into the sacred mystery of the Universe; what Goethe
calls "the open secret." "Which is the great secret?"
asks one. "The open secret," open to all, seen by almost none!
That divine mystery, which lies everywhere in all Beings, "the Divine
Idea of the World, that which lies at the bottom of Appearance," as
Fichte styles it; of which all Appearance, from the starry sky to the grass
of the field, but especially the Appearance of Man and his work, is but the
vesture, the embodiment that renders it visible. This divine mystery is in all
times and in all places; veritably is. In most times and places it is greatly
overlooked; and the Universe, definable always in one or the other dialect,
as the realized Thought of God, is considered a trivial, inert, commonplace
matter, as if, says the Satirist, it were a dead thing, which some
upholsterer had put together! It could do no good, at present, to speak much
about this; but it is a pity for every one of us if we do not know it, live
ever in the knowledge of it. Really a most mournful pity; a failure to live
at all, if we live otherwise! But now, I say, whoever may forget this divine
mystery, the Vates, whether Prophet or Poet, has penetrated into it; is a man
sent hither to make it more impressively known to us. That always is his
message; he is to reveal that to us, that sacred mystery which he more than
others lives ever present with. While others forget it, he knows it; I might
say, he has been driven to know it; without consent asked of him, he finds
himself living in it, bound to live in it. Once more, here is no Hearsay, but
a direct Insight and Belief; this man too could not help being a sincere man!
Whosoever may live in the shows of things, it is for him a necessity of
nature to live in the very fact of things. A man once more, in earnest with
the Universe, though all others were but toying with it. He is a Vates, first
of all, in virtue of being sincere. So far Poet and Prophet, participators in
the "open secret," are one. With respect to their distinction
again: The Vates Prophet, we might say, has seized that sacred mystery rather
on the moral side, as Good and Evil, Duty and Prohibition; the Vates Poet on
what the Germans call the aesthetic side, as Beautiful, and the like. The one
we may call a revealer of what we are to do, the other of what we are to
love. But indeed these two provinces run into one another, and cannot be
disjoined. The Prophet too has his eye on what we are to love: how else shall
he know what it is we are to do? The highest Voice ever heard on this earth
said withal, "Consider the lilies of the field; they toil not, neither
do they spin: yet Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of
these." A glance, that, into the deepest deep of Beauty. "The
lilies of the field," dressed finer than earthly princes, springing up
there in the humble furrow-field; a beautiful eye looking out on you, from
the great inner Sea of Beauty! How could the rude Earth make these, if her
Essence, rugged as she looks and is, were not inwardly Beauty? In this point
of view, too, a saying of Goethe's, which has staggered several, may have
meaning: "The Beautiful," he intimates, "is higher than the
Good; the Beautiful includes in it the Good." The true Beautiful; which
however, I have said somewhere, "differs from the false as Heaven does
from Vauxhall!" So much for the distinction and identity of Poet and
Prophet. In ancient and also in modern periods we find a few Poets who are
accounted perfect; whom it were a kind of treason to find fault with. This is
noteworthy; this is right: yet in strictness it is only an illusion. At
bottom, clearly enough, there is no perfect Poet! A vein of Poetry exists in
the hearts of all men; no man is made altogether of Poetry. We are all poets
when we read a poem well. The "imagination that shudders at the Hell of
Dante," is not that the same faculty, weaker in degree, as Dante's own?
No one but Shakspeare can embody, out of Saxo Grammaticus, the story of
Hamlet as Shakspeare did: but every one models some kind of story out of it;
every one embodies it better or worse. We need not spend time in defining.
Where there is no specific difference, as between round and square, all
definition must be more or less arbitrary. A man that has so much more of the
poetic element developed in him as to have become noticeable, will be called
Poet by his neighbors. World-Poets too, those whom we are to take for perfect
Poets, are settled by critics in the same way. One who rises so far above the
general level of Poets will, to such and such critics, seem a Universal Poet;
as he ought to do. And yet it is, and must be, an arbitrary distinction. All
Poets, all men, have some touches of the Universal; no man is wholly made of
that. Most Poets are very soon forgotten: but not the noblest Shakspeare or
Homer of them can be remembered forever; a day comes when he too is not!
Nevertheless, you will say, there must be a difference between true Poetry
and true Speech not poetical: what is the difference? On this point many
things have been written, especially by late German Critics, some of which
are not very intelligible at first. They say, for example, that the Poet has
an infinitude in him; communicates an Unendlichkeit, a certain character of
"infinitude," to whatsoever he delineates. This, though not very
precise, yet on so vague a matter is worth remembering: if well meditated,
some meaning will gradually be found in it. For my own part, I find
considerable meaning in the old vulgar distinction of Poetry being metrical,
having music in it, being a Song. Truly, if pressed to give a definition, one
might say this as soon as anything else: If your delineation be authentically
musical, musical not in word only, but in heart and substance, in all the
thoughts and utterances of it, in the whole conception of it, then it will be
poetical; if not, not. Musical: how much lies in that! A musical thought is
one spoken by a mind that has penetrated into the inmost heart of the thing;
detected the inmost mystery of it, namely the melody that lies hidden in it;
the inward harmony of coherence which is its soul, whereby it exists, and has
a right to be, here in this world. All inmost things, we may say, are
melodious; naturally utter themselves in Song. The meaning of Song goes deep.
Who is there that, in logical words, can express the effect music has on us?
A kind of inarticulate unfathomable speech, which leads us to the edge of the
Infinite, and lets us for moments gaze into that! Nay all speech, even the
commonest speech, has something of song in it: not a parish in the world but
has its parish-accent; the rhythm or tune to which the people there sing
what they have to say! Accent is a kind of chanting; all men have accent of
their own, though they only notice that of others. Observe too how all
passionate language does of itself become musical, with a finer music than
the mere accent; the speech of a man even in zealous anger becomes a chant, a
song. All deep things are Song. It seems somehow the very central essence of
us, Song; as if all the rest were but wrappages and hulls! The primal element
of us; of us, and of all things. The Greeks fabled of Sphere-Harmonies: it
was the feeling they had of the inner structure of Nature; that the soul of
all her voices and utterances was perfect music. Poetry, therefore, we will
call musical Thought. The Poet is he who thinks in that manner. At bottom, it
turns still on power of intellect; it is a man's sincerity and depth of
vision that makes him a Poet. See deep enough, and you see musically; the
heart of Nature being everywhere music, if you can only reach it. The Vates
Poet, with his melodious Apocalypse of Nature, seems to hold a poor rank
among us, in comparison with the Vates Prophet; his function, and our esteem
of him for his function, alike slight. The Hero taken as Divinity; the Hero
taken as Prophet; then next the Hero taken only as Poet: does it not look as
if our estimate of the Great Man, epoch after epoch, were continually
diminishing? We take him first for a god, then for one god-inspired; and now
in the next stage of it, his most miraculous word gains from us only the
recognition that he is a Poet, beautiful verse-maker, man of genius, or such
like! It looks so; but I persuade myself that intrinsically it is not so. If
we consider well, it will perhaps appear that in man still there is the same
altogether peculiar admiration for the Heroic Gift, by what name soever
called, that there at any time was. I should say, if we do not now reckon a
Great Man literally divine, it is that our notions of God, of the supreme
unattainable Fountain of Splendor, Wisdom and Heroism, are ever rising
higher; not altogether that our reverence for these qualities, as manifested
in our like, is getting lower. This is worth taking thought of. Sceptical
Dilettantism, the curse of these ages, a curse which will not last forever,
does indeed in this the highest province of human things, as in all
provinces, make sad work; and our reverence for great men, all crippled,
blinded, paralytic as it is, comes out in poor plight, hardly recognizable.
Men worship the shows of great men; the most disbelieve that there is any
reality of great men to worship. The dreariest, fatalest faith; believing
which, one would literally despair of human things. Nevertheless look, for
example, at Napoleon! A Corsican lieutenant of artillery; that is the show of
him: yet is he not obeyed, worshipped after his sort, as all the Tiaraed and
Diademed of the world put together could not be? High Duchesses, and ostlers
of inns, gather round the Scottish rustic, Burns; a strange feeling dwelling
in each that they never heard a man like this; that, on the whole, this is
the man! In the secret heart of these people it still dimly reveals itself,
though there is no accredited way of uttering it at present, that this
rustic, with his black brows and flashing sun-eyes, and strange words moving
laughter and tears, is of a dignity far beyond all others, incommensurable
with all others. Do not we feel it so? But now, were Dilettantism,
Scepticism, Triviality, and all that sorrowful brood, cast out of us, as, by
God's blessing, they shall one day be; were faith in the shows of things
entirely swept out, replaced by clear faith in the things, so that a man
acted on the impulse of that only, and counted the other non-extant; what a
new livelier feeling towards this Burns were it! Nay here in these ages, such
as they are, have we not two mere Poets, if not deified, yet we may say
beatified? Shakspeare and Dante are Saints of Poetry; really, if we will
think of it, canonized, so that it is impiety to meddle with them. The
unguided instinct of the world, working across all these perverse
impediments, has arrived at such result. Dante and Shakspeare are a peculiar
Two. They dwell apart, in a kind of royal solitude; none equal, none second
to them: in the general feeling of the world, a certain transcendentalism, a
glory as of complete perfection, invests these two. They are canonized,
though no Pope or Cardinals took hand in doing it! Such, in spite of every
perverting influence, in the most unheroic times, is still our indestructible
reverence for heroism. We will look a little at these Two, the Poet Dante
and the Poet Shakspeare: what little it is permitted us to say here of the
Hero as Poet will most fitly arrange itself in that fashion. Many volumes have been written by way of commentary
on Dante and his Book; yet, on the whole, with no great result. His Biography
is, as it were, irrecoverably lost for us. An unimportant, wandering,
sorrow-stricken man, not much note was taken of him while he lived; and the
most of that has vanished, in the long space that now intervenes. It is five
centuries since he ceased writing and living here. After all commentaries,
the Book itself is mainly what we know of him. The Book; and one might add
that Portrait commonly attributed to Giotto, which, looking on it, you cannot
help inclining to think genuine, whoever did it. To me it is a most touching
face; perhaps of all faces that I know, the most so. Lonely there, painted as
on vacancy, with the simple laurel wound round it; the deathless sorrow and
pain, the known victory which is also deathless; significant of the whole
history of Dante! I think it is the mournfulest face that ever was painted
from reality; an altogether tragic, heart-affecting face. There is in it, as
foundation of it, the softness, tenderness, gentle affection as of a child;
but all this is as if congealed into sharp contradiction, into abnegation,
isolation, proud hopeless pain. A soft ethereal soul looking out so stern,
implacable, grim-trenchant, as from imprisonment of thick-ribbed ice! Withal
it is a silent pain too, a silent scornful one: the lip is curled in a kind
of godlike disdain of the thing that is eating out his heart, as if it were
withal a mean insignificant thing, as if he whom it had power to torture and
strangle were greater than it. The face of one wholly in protest, and
lifelong unsurrendering battle, against the world. Affection all converted
into indignation: an implacable indignation; slow, equable, silent, like that
of a god! The eye too, it looks out as in a kind of surprise, a kind of
inquiry, Why the world was of such a sort? This is Dante: so he looks, this
"voice of ten silent centuries," and sings us "his mystic
unfathomable song." The little that we know of Dante's Life corresponds
well enough with this Portrait and this Book. He was born at Florence, in the
upper class of society, in the year 1265. His education was the best then
going; much school-divinity, Aristotelean logic, some Latin classics, no
inconsiderable insight into certain provinces of things: and Dante, with his
earnest intelligent nature, we need not doubt, learned better than most all
that was learnable. He has a clear cultivated understanding, and of great
subtlety; this best fruit of education he had contrived to realize from these
scholastics. He knows accurately and well what lies close to him; but, in
such a time, without printed books or free intercourse, he could not know
well what was distant: the small clear light, most luminous for what is near,
breaks itself into singular chiaroscuro striking on what is far off. This was
Dante's learning from the schools. In life, he had gone through the usual
destinies; been twice out campaigning as a soldier for the Florentine State,
been on embassy; had in his thirty-fifth year, by natural gradation of talent
and service, become one of the Chief Magistrates of Florence. He had met in
boyhood a certain Beatrice Portinari, a beautiful little girl of his own age
and rank, and grown up thenceforth in partial sight of her, in some distant
intercourse with her. All readers know his graceful affecting account of
this; and then of their being parted; of her being wedded to another, and of
her death soon after. She makes a great figure in Dante's Poem; seems to have
made a great figure in his life. Of all beings it might seem as if she, held
apart from him, far apart at last in the dim Eternity, were the only one he
had ever with his whole strength of affection loved. She died: Dante himself
was wedded; but it seems not happily, far from happily. I fancy, the rigorous
earnest man, with his keen excitabilities, was not altogether easy to make
happy. We will not complain of Dante's miseries: had all gone right with him
as he wished it, he might have been Prior, Podesta, or whatsoever they call
it, of Florence, well accepted among neighbors, and the world had wanted one
of the most notable words ever spoken or sung. Florence would have had
another prosperous Lord Mayor; and the ten dumb centuries continued
voiceless, and the ten other listening centuries (for there will be ten of
them and more) had no Divina Commedia to hear! We will complain of nothing. A
nobler destiny was appointed for this Dante; and he, struggling like a man
led towards death and crucifixion, could not help fulfilling it. Give him the
choice of his happiness! He knew not, more than we do, what was really happy,
what was really miserable. In Dante's Priorship, the Guelf-Ghibelline,
Bianchi-Neri, or some other confused disturbances rose to such a height, that
Dante, whose party had seemed the stronger, was with his friends cast
unexpectedly forth into banishment; doomed thenceforth to a life of woe and
wandering. His property was all confiscated and more; he had the fiercest
feeling that it was entirely unjust, nefarious in the sight of God and man.
He tried what was in him to get reinstated; tried even by warlike surprisal,
with arms in his hand: but it would not do; bad only had become worse. There
is a record, I believe, still extant in the Florence Archives, dooming this
Dante, wheresoever caught, to be burnt alive. Burnt alive; so it stands, they
say: a very curious civic document. Another curious document, some
considerable number of years later, is a Letter of Dante's to the Florentine
Magistrates, written in answer to a milder proposal of theirs, that he should
return on condition of apologizing and paying a fine. He answers, with fixed
stern pride: "If I cannot return without calling myself guilty, I will
never return, nunquam revertar." For Dante there was now no home in this
world. He wandered from patron to patron, from place to place; proving, in
his own bitter words, "How hard is the path, Come e duro calle."
The wretched are not cheerful company. Dante, poor and banished, with his
proud earnest nature, with his moody humors, was not a man to conciliate men.
Petrarch reports of him that being at Can della Scala's court, and blamed one
day for his gloom and taciturnity, he answered in no courtier-like way. Della
Scala stood among his courtiers, with mimes and buffoons (nebulones ac
histriones) making him heartily merry; when turning to Dante, he said:
"Is it not strange, now, that this poor fool should make himself so
entertaining; while you, a wise man, sit there day after day, and have
nothing to amuse us with at all?" Dante answered bitterly: "No, not
strange; your Highness is to recollect the Proverb, Like to Like;"
given the amuser, the amusee must also be given! Such a man, with his proud
silent ways, with his sarcasms and sorrows, was not made to succeed at court.
By degrees, it came to be evident to him that he had no longer any
resting-place, or hope of benefit, in this earth. The earthly world had cast
him forth, to wander, wander; no living heart to love him now; for his sore
miseries there was no solace here. The deeper naturally would the Eternal
World impress itself on him; that awful reality over which, after all, this
Time-world, with its Florences and banishments, only flutters as an unreal
shadow. Florence thou shalt never see: but Hell and Purgatory and Heaven thou
shalt surely see! What is Florence, Can della Scala, and the World and Life
altogether? ETERNITY: thither, of a truth, not elsewhither, art thou and all
things bound! The great soul of Dante, homeless on earth, made its home more
and more in that awful other world. Naturally his thoughts brooded on that,
as on the one fact important for him. Bodied or bodiless, it is the one fact
important for all men: but to Dante, in that age, it was bodied in fixed
certainty of scientific shape; he no more doubted of that Malebolge Pool,
that it all lay there with its gloomy circles, with its alti guai, and that
he himself should see it, than we doubt that we should see Constantinople if
we went thither. Dante's heart, long filled with this, brooding over it in
speechless thought and awe, bursts forth at length into "mystic
unfathomable song; " and this his Divine Comedy, the most remarkable of
all modern Books, is the result. It must have been a great solacement to
Dante, and was, as we can see, a proud thought for him at times, That he,
here in exile, could do this work; that no Florence, nor no man or men, could
hinder him from doing it, or even much help him in doing it. He knew too,
partly, that it was great; the greatest a man could do. "If thou follow
thy star, Se tu segui tua stella," so could the Hero, in his
forsakenness, in his extreme need, still say to himself: "Follow thou
thy star, thou shalt not fail of a glorious haven!" The labor of
writing, we find, and indeed could know otherwise, was great and painful for
him; he says, This Book, "which has made me lean for many years."
Ah yes, it was won, all of it, with pain and sore toil, not in sport, but in
grim earnest. His Book, as indeed most good Books are, has been written, in
many senses, with his heart's blood. It is his whole history, this Book. He
died after finishing it; not yet very old, at the age of fifty-six;
broken-hearted rather, as is said. He lies buried in his death-city Ravenna:
Hic claudor Dantes patriis extorris ab oris. The Florentines begged back his
body, in a century after; the Ravenna people would not give it. "Here am
I Dante laid, shut out from my native shores." I said, Dante's Poem was
a Song: it is Tieck who calls it "a mystic unfathomable Song;" and
such is literally the character of it. Coleridge remarks very pertinently
somewhere, that wherever you find a sentence musically worded, of true rhythm
and melody in the words, there is something deep and good in the meaning too.
For body and soul, word and idea, go strangely together here as everywhere.
Song: we said before, it was the Heroic of Speech! All old Poems, Homer's and
the rest, are authentically Songs. I would say, in strictness, that all right
Poems are; that whatsoever is not sung is properly no Poem, but a piece of
Prose cramped into jingling lines, to the great injury of the grammar, to
the great grief of the reader, for most part! What we wants to get at is the
thought the man had, if he had any: why should he twist it into jingle, if he
could speak it out plainly? It is only when the heart of him is rapt into
true passion of melody, and the very tones of him, according to Coleridge's
remark, become musical by the greatness, depth and music of his thoughts,
that we can give him right to rhyme and sing; that we call him a Poet, and
listen to him as the Heroic of Speakers, whose speech is Song. Pretenders to
this are many; and to an earnest reader, I doubt, it is for most part a very
melancholy, not to say an insupportable business, that of reading rhyme!
Rhyme that had no inward necessity to be rhymed; it ought to have told us
plainly, without any jingle, what it was aiming at. I would advise all men
who can speak their thought, not to sing it; to understand that, in a serious
time, among serious men, there is no vocation in them for singing it.
Precisely as we love the true song, and are charmed by it as by something
divine, so shall we hate the false song, and account it a mere wooden noise,
a thing hollow, superfluous, altogether an insincere and offensive thing. I
give Dante my highest praise when I say of his Divine Comedy that it is, in
all senses, genuinely a Song. In the very sound of it there is a canto fermo;
it proceeds as by a chant. The language, his simple terza rima, doubtless
helped him in this. One reads along naturally with a sort of lilt. But I add,
that it could not be otherwise; for the essence and material of the work are
themselves rhythmic. Its depth, and rapt passion and sincerity, makes it
musical; go deep enough, there is music everywhere. A true inward symmetry,
what one calls an architectural harmony, reigns in it, proportionates it all:
architectural; which also partakes of the character of music. The three
kingdoms, Inferno, Purgatorio, Paradiso, look out on one another like
compartments of a great edifice; a great supernatural world-cathedral, piled
up there, stern, solemn, awful; Dante's World of Souls! It is, at bottom, the
sincerest of all Poems; sincerity, here too,, we find to be the measure of
worth. It came deep out of the author's heart of hearts; and it goes deep,
and through long generations, into ours. The people of Verona, when they saw
him on the streets, used to say, "Eccovi l' uom ch' e stato all'
Inferno, See, there is the man that was in Hell!" Ah yes, he had been in
Hell; in Hell enough, in long severe sorrow and struggle; as the like of him
is pretty sure to have been. Commedias that come out divine are not
accomplished otherwise. Thought, true labor of any kind, highest virtue
itself, is it not the daughter of Pain? Born as out of the black whirlwind;
true effort, in fact, as of a captive struggling to free himself: that is
Thought. In all ways we are "to become perfect through suffering."
But, as I say, no work known to me is so elaborated as this of Dante's. It
has all been as if molten, in the hottest furnace of his soul. It had made
him "lean" for many years. Not the general whole only; every
compartment of it is worked out, with intense earnestness, into truth, into
clear visuality. Each answers to the other; each fits in its place, like a
marble stone accurately hewn and polished. It is the soul of Dante, and in
this the soul of the middle ages, rendered forever rhythmically visible
there. No light task; a right intense one: but a task which is done. Perhaps
one would say, intensity, with the much that depends on it, is the prevailing
character of Dante's genius. Dante does not come before us as a large
catholic mind; rather as a narrow, and even sectarian mind: it is partly the
fruit of his age and position, but partly too of his own nature. His
greatness has, in all senses, concentred itself into fiery emphasis and
depth. He is world-great not because he is worldwide, but because he is
world-deep. Through all objects he pierces as it were down into the heart of
Being. I know nothing so intense as Dante. Consider, for example, to begin
with the outermost development of his intensity, consider how he paints. He
has a great power of vision; seizes the very type of a thing; presents that
and nothing more. You remember that first view he gets of the Hall of Dite:
red pinnacle, red-hot cone of iron glowing through the dim immensity of
gloom; so vivid, so distinct, visible at once and forever! It is as an
emblem of the whole genius of Dante. There is a brevity, an abrupt precision
in him: Tacitus is not briefer, more condensed; and then in Dante it seems a
natural condensation, spontaneous to the man. One smiting word; and then
there is silence, nothing more said. His silence is more eloquent than words.
It is strange with what a sharp decisive grace he snatches the true likeness
of a matter: cuts into the matter as with a pen of fire. Plutus, the
blustering giant, collapses at Virgil's rebuke; it is "as the sails
sink, the mast being suddenly broken." Or that poor Brunetto Latini,
with the cotto aspetto, "face baked," parched brown and lean; and
the "fiery snow" that falls on them there, a "fiery snow
without wind," slow, deliberate, never-ending! Or the lids of those
Tombs; square sarcophaguses, in that silent dim-burning Hall, each with its
Soul in torment; the lids laid open there; they are to be shut at the Day of
Judgment, through Eternity. And how Farinata rises; and how Cavalcante falls
at hearing of his Son, and the past tense "fue"! The very
movements in Dante have something brief; swift, decisive, almost military. It
is of the inmost essence of his genius this sort of painting. The fiery,
swift Italian nature of the man, so silent, passionate, with its quick abrupt
movements, its silent "pale rages," speaks itself in these things.
For though this of painting is one of the outermost developments of a man, it
comes like all else from the essential faculty of him; it is physiognomical
of the whole man. Find a man whose words paint you a likeness, you have found
a man worth something; mark his manner of doing it, as very characteristic of
him. In the first place, he could not have discerned the object at all, or
seen the vital type of it, unless he had, what we may call, sympathized with
it, had sympathy in him to bestow on objects. He must have been sincere
about it too; sincere and sympathetic: a man without worth cannot give you
the likeness of any object; he dwells in vague outwardness, fallacy and
trivial hearsay, about all objects. And indeed may we not say that intellect
altogether expresses itself in this power of discerning what an object is?
Whatsoever of faculty a man's mind may have will come out here. Is it even of
business, a matter to be done? The gifted man is he who sees the essential
point, and leaves all the rest aside as surplusage: it is his faculty too,
the man of business's faculty, that he discern the true likeness, not the
false superficial one, of the thing he has got to work in. And how much of
morality is in the kind of insight we get of anything; "the eye seeing
in all things what it brought with it the faculty of seeing"! To the
mean eye all things are trivial, as certainly as to the jaundiced they are
yellow. Raphael, the Painters tell us, is the best of all Portrait-painters
withal. No most gifted eye can exhaust the significance of any object. In the
commonest human face there lies more than Raphael will take away with him.
Dante's painting is not graphic only, brief, true, and of a vividness as of
fire in dark night; taken on the wider scale, it is every way noble, and the
outcome of a great soul. Francesca and her Lover, what qualities in that! A
thing woven as out of rainbows, on a ground of eternal black. A small
flute-voice of infinite wail speaks there, into our very heart of hearts. A
touch of womanhood in it too: della bella persona, che mi fu tolta; and how,
even in the Pit of woe, it is a solace that he will never part from her!
Saddest tragedy in these alti guai. And the racking winds, in that aer bruno,
whirl them away again, to wail forever! Strange to think: Dante was the
friend of this poor Francesca's father; Francesca herself may have sat upon
the Poet's knee, as a bright innocent little child. Infinite pity, yet also
infinite rigor of law: it is so Nature is made; it is so Dante discerned that
she was made. What a paltry notion is that of his Divine Comedy's being a
poor splenetic impotent terrestrial libel; putting those into Hell whom he
could not be avenged upon on earth! I suppose if ever pity, tender as a mother's,
was in the heart of any man, it was in Dante's. But a man who does not know
rigor cannot pity either. His very pity will be cowardly, egoistic,
sentimentality, or little better. I know not in the world an affection equal
to that of Dante. It is a tenderness, a trembling, longing, pitying love:
like the wail of AEolian harps, soft, soft; like a child's young heart; and
then that stern, sore-saddened heart! These longings of his towards his
Beatrice; their meeting together in the Paradiso; his gazing in her pure
transfigured eyes, her that had been purified by death so long, separated
from him so far: one likens it to the song of angels; it is among the purest
utterances of affection, perhaps the very purest, that ever came out of a
human soul. For the intense Dante is intense in all things; he has got into
the essence of all. His intellectual insight as painter, on occasion too as
reasoner, is but the result of all other sorts of intensity. Morally great,
above all, we must call him; it is the beginning of all. His scorn, his grief
are as transcendent as his love; as indeed, what are they but the inverse or
converse of his love? "A Dio spiacenti ed a' nemici sui, Hateful to God
and to the enemies of God: "lofty scorn, unappeasable silent reprobation
and aversion; "Non ragionam di lor, We will not speak of them, look only
and pass." Or think of this; "They have not the hope to die, Non
han speranza di morte." One day, it had risen sternly benign on the
scathed heart of Dante, that he, wretched, never-resting, worn as he was,
would full surely die; "that Destiny itself could not doom him not to
die." Such words are in this man. For rigor, earnestness and depth, he
is not to be paralleled in the modern world; to seek his parallel we must go
into the Hebrew Bible, and live with the antique Prophets there. I do not
agree with much modern criticism, in greatly preferring the Inferno to the
two other parts of the Divine Commedia. Such preference belongs, I imagine,
to our general Byronism of taste, and is like to be a transient feeling. Thc
Purgatorio and Paradiso, especially the former, one would almost say, is even
more excellent than it. It is a noble thing that Purgatorio, "Mountain
of Purification;" an emblem of the noblest conception of that age. If
sin is so fatal, and Hell is and must be so rigorous, awful, yet in
Repentance too is man purified; Repentance is the grand Christian act. It is
beautiful how Dante works it out. The tremolar dell' onde, that
"trembling" of the ocean-waves, under the first pure gleam of
morning, dawning afar on the wandering Two, is as the type of an altered
mood. Hope has now dawned; never-dying Hope, if in company still with heavy
sorrow. The obscure sojourn of demons and reprobate is underfoot; a soft
breathing of penitence mounts higher and higher, to the Throne of Mercy
itself. "Pray for me," the denizens of that Mount of Pain all say
to him. "Tell my Giovanna to pray for me," my daughter Giovanna;
"I think her mother loves me no more!" They toil painfully up by
that winding steep, "bent down like corbels of a building," some of
them, crushed together so "for the sin of pride;" yet nevertheless
in years, in ages and aeons, they shall have reached the top, which is
heaven's gate, and by Mercy shall have been admitted in. The joy too of all,
when one has prevailed; the whole Mountain shakes with joy, and a psalm of
praise rises, when one soul has perfected repentance and got its sin and
misery left behind! I call all this a noble embodiment of a true noble
thought. But indeed the Three compartments mutually support one another, are
indispensable to one another. The Paradiso, a kind of inarticulate music to
me, is the redeeming side of the Inferno; the Inferno without it were untrue.
All three make up the true Unseen World, as figured in the Christianity of
the Middle Ages; a thing forever memorable, forever true in the essence of
it, to all men. It was perhaps delineated in no human soul with such depth of
veracity as in this of Dante's; a man sent to sing it, to keep it long memorable.
Very notable with what brief simplicity he passes out of the every-day
reality, into the Invisible one; and in the second or third stanza, we find
ourselves in the World of Spirits; and dwell there, as among things palpable,
indubitable! To Dante they were so; the real world, as it is called, and its
facts, was but the threshold to an infinitely higher Fact of a World. At
bottom, the one was as preternatural as the other. Has not each man a soul?
He will not only be a spirit, but is one. To the earnest Dante it is all one
visible Fact; he believes it, sees it; is the Poet of it in virtue of that.
Sincerity, I say again, is the saving merit, now as always. Dante's Hell,
Purgatory, Paradise, are a symbol withal, an emblematic representation of his
Belief about this Universe: some Critic in a future age, like those
Scandinavian ones the other day, who has ceased altogether to think as Dante
did, may find this too all an "Allegory," perhaps an idle Allegory!
It is a sublime embodiment, or sublimest, of the soul of Christianity. It
expresses, as in huge world-wide architectural emblems, how the Christian
Dante felt Good and Evil to be the two polar elements of this Creation, on
which it all turns; that these two differ not by preferability of one to the other,
but by incompatibility absolute and infinite; that the one is excellent and
high as light and Heaven, the other hideous, black as Gehenna and the Pit of
Hell! Everlasting Justice, yet with Penitence, with everlasting Pity, all
Christianism, as Dante and the Middle Ages had it, is emblemed here.
Emblemed: and yet, as I urged the other day, with what entire truth of
purpose; how unconscious of any embleming! Hell, Purgatory, Paradise: these
things were not fashioned as emblems; was there, in our Modern European Mind,
any thought at all of their being emblems! Were they not indubitable awful
facts; the whole heart of man taking them for practically true, all Nature
everywhere confirming them? So is it always in these things. Men do not
believe an Allegory. The future Critic, whatever his new thought may be, who
considers this of Dante to have been all got up as an Allegory, will commit
one sore mistake! Paganism we recognized as a veracious expression of the
earnest awe-struck feeling of man towards the Universe; veracious, true once,
and still not without worth for us. But mark here the difference of Paganism
and Christianism; one great difference. Paganism emblemed chiefly the
Operations of Nature; the destinies, efforts, combinations, vicissitudes of things
and men in this world; Christianism emblemed the Law of Human Duty, the Moral
Law of Man. One was for the sensuous nature: a rude helpless utterance of the
first Thought of men, the chief recognized virtue, Courage, Superiority to
Fear. The other was not for the sensuous nature, but for the moral. What a
progress is here, if in that one respect only! And so in this Dante, as we
said, had ten silent centuries, in a very strange way, found a voice. The
Divina Commedia is of Dante's writing; yet in truth it belongs to ten
Christian centuries, only the finishing of it is Dante's. So always. The
craftsman there, the smith with that metal of his, with these tools, with
these cunning methods, how little of all he does is properly his work! All
past inventive men work there with him; as indeed with all of us, in all
things. Dante is the spokesman of the Middle Ages; the Thought they lived by
stands here, in everlasting music. These sublime ideas of his, terrible and
beautiful, are the fruit of the Christian Meditation of all the good men who
had gone before him. Precious they; but also is not he precious? Much, had
not he spoken, would have been dumb; not dead, yet living voiceless. On the
whole, is it not an utterance, this mystic Song, at once of one of the
greatest human souls, and of the highest thing that Europe had hitherto
realized for itself? Christianism, as Dante sings it, is another than
Paganism in the rude Norse mind; another than "Bastard
Christianism" half- articulately spoken in the Arab Desert, seven
hundred years before! The noblest idea made real hitherto among men, is
sung, and emblemed forth abidingly, by one of the noblest men. In the one
sense and in the other, are we not right glad to possess it? As I calculate,
it may last yet for long thousands of years. For the thing that is uttered
from the inmost parts of a man's soul, differs altogether from what is
uttered by the outer part. The outer is of the day, under the empire of mode;
the outer passes away, in swift endless changes; the inmost is the same
yesterday, to-day and forever. True souls, in all generations of the world,
who look on this Dante, will find a brotherhood in him; the deep sincerity of
his thoughts, his woes and hopes, will speak likewise to their sincerity;
they will feel that this Dante too was a brother. Napoleon in Saint Helena is
charmed with the genial veracity of old Homer. The oldest Hebrew Prophet,
under a vesture the most diverse from ours, does yet, because he speaks from
the heart of man, speak to all men's hearts. It is the one sole secret of
continuing long memorable. Dante, for depth of sincerity, is like an antique
Prophet too; his words, like theirs, come from his very heart. One need not
wonder if it were predicted that his Poem might be the most enduring thing
our Europe has yet made; for nothing so endures as a truly spoken word. All
cathedrals, pontificalities, brass and stone, and outer arrangement never so
lasting, are brief in comparison to an unfathomable heart-song like this: one
feels as if it might survive, still of importance to men, when these had all
sunk into new irrecognizable combinations, and had ceased individually to be.
Europe has made much; great cities, great empires, encyclopaedias, creeds,
bodies of opinion and practice: but it has made little of the class of
Dante's Thought. Homer yet is veritably present face to face with every open
soul of us; and Greece, where is it? Desolate for thousands of years; away,
vanished; a bewildered heap of stones and rubbish, the life and existence of
it all gone. Like a dream; like the dust of King Agamemnon! Greece was;
Greece, except in the words it spoke, is not. The uses of this Dante? We will
not say much about his "uses." A human soul who has once got into
that primal element of Song, and sung forth fitly somewhat therefrom, has
worked in the depths of our existence; feeding through long times the
life-roots of all excellent human things whatsoever, in a way that
"utilities" will not succeed well in calculating! We will not
estimate the Sun by the quantity of gaslight it saves us; Dante shall be
invaluable, or of no value. One remark I may make: the contrast in this
respect between the Hero-Poet and the Hero-Prophet. In a hundred years,
Mahomet, as we saw, had his Arabians at Grenada and at Delhi; Dante's
Italians seem to be yet very much where they were. Shall we say, then,
Dante's effect on the world was small in comparison? Not so: his arena is far
more restricted; but also it is far nobler, clearer; perhaps not less but
more important. Mahomet speaks to great masses of men, in the coarse dialect
adapted to such; a dialect filled with inconsistencies, crudities, follies:
on the great masses alone can he act, and there with good and with evil
strangely blended. Dante speaks to the noble, the pure and great, in all
times and places. Neither does he grow obsolete, as the other does. Dante
burns as a pure star, fixed there in the firmament, at which the great and
the high of all ages kindle themselves: he is the possession of all the
chosen of the world for uncounted time. Dante, one calculates, may long
survive Mahomet. In this way the balance may be made straight again. But, at
any rate, it is not by what is called their effect on the world, by what we
can judge of their effect there, that a man and his work are measured.
Effect? Influence? Utility? Let a man do his work; the fruit of it is the
care of Another than he. It will grow its own fruit; and whether embodied in
Caliph Thrones and Arabian Conquests, so that it "fills all Morning and
Evening Newspapers," and all Histories, which are a kind of distilled
Newspapers; or not embodied so at all; what matters that? That is not the
real fruit of it! The Arabian Caliph, in so far only as he did something, was
something. If the great Cause of Man, and Man's work in God's Earth, got no
furtherance from the Arabian Caliph, then no matter how many scimetars he
drew, how many gold piasters pocketed, and what uproar and blaring he made in
this world, he was but a loud-sounding inanity and futility; at bottom, he
was not at all. Let us honor the great empire of Silence, once more! The
boundless treasury which we do not jingle in our pockets, or count up and
present before men! It is perhaps, of all things, the usefulest for each of
us to do, in these loud times. As Dante, the Italian man, was sent into our
world to embody musically the Religion of the Middle Ages, the Religion of
our Modern Europe, its Inner Life; so Shakspeare, we may say, embodies for us
the Outer Life of our Europe as developed then, its chivalries, courtesies,
humors, ambitions, what practical way of thinking, acting, looking at the
world, men then had. As in Homer we may still construe Old Greece; so in
Shakspeare and Dante, after thousands of years, what our modern Europe was,
in Faith and in Practice, will still be legible. Dante has given us the Faith
or soul; Shakspeare, in a not less noble way, has given us the Practice or
body. This latter also we were to have; a man was sent for it, the man
Shakspeare. Just when that chivalry way of life had reached its last finish,
and was on the point of breaking down into slow or swift dissolution, as we
now see it everywhere, this other sovereign Poet, with his seeing eye, with
his perennial singing voice, was sent to take note of it, to give long-enduring
record of it. Two fit men: Dante, deep, fierce as the central fire of the
world; Shakspeare, wide, placid, far-seeing, as the Sun, the upper light of
the world. Italy produced the one world-voice; we English had the honor of
producing the other. Curious enough how, as it were by mere accident, this
man came to us. I think always, so great, quiet, complete and self-sufficing
is this Shakspeare, had the Warwickshire Squire not prosecuted him for
deer-stealing, we had perhaps never heard of him as a Poet! The woods and
skies, the rustic Life of Man in Stratford there, had been enough for this
man! But indeed that strange outbudding of our whole English Existence, which
we call the Elizabethan Era, did not it too come as of its own accord? The "Tree
Igdrasil" buds and withers by its own laws, too deep for our scanning.
Yet it does bud and wither, and every bough and leaf of it is there, by fixed
eternal laws; not a Sir Thomas Lucy but comes at the hour fit for him.
Curious, I say, and not sufficiently considered: how everything does
co-operate with all; not a leaf rotting on the highway but is indissoluble
portion of solar and stellar systems; no thought, word or act of man but has
sprung withal out of all men, and works sooner or later, recognizably or
irrecognizable, on all men! It is all a Tree: circulation of sap and
influences, mutual communication of every minutest leaf with the lowest talon
of a root, with every other greatest and minutest portion of the whole. The
Tree Igdrasil, that has its roots down in the Kingdoms of Hela and Death, and
whose boughs overspread the highest Heaven! In some sense it may be said
that this glorious Elizabethan Era with its Shakspeare, as the outcome and
flowerage of all which had preceded it, is itself attributable to the
Catholicism of the Middle Ages. The Christian Faith, which was the theme of
Dante's Song, had produced this Practical Life which Shakspeare was to sing.
For Religion then, as it now and always is, was the soul of Practice; the
primary vital fact in men's life. And remark here, as rather curious, that
Middle-Age Catholicism was abolished, so far as Acts of Parliament could
abolish it, before Shakspeare, the noblest product of it, made his
appearance. He did make his appearance nevertheless. Nature at her own time,
with Catholicism or what else might be necessary, sent him forth; taking
small thought of Acts of Parliament. King Henrys, Queen Elizabeths go their
way; and Nature too goes hers. Acts of Parliament, on the whole, are small,
notwithstanding the noise they make. What Act of Parliament, debate at St.
Stephen's, on the hustings or elsewhere, was it that brought this Shakspeare
into being? No dining at Freemason's Tavern, opening subscription-lists,
selling of shares, and infinite other jangling and true or false endeavoring!
This Elizabethan Era, and all its nobleness and blessedness, came without
proclamation, preparation of ours. Priceless Shakspeare was the free gift of
Nature; given altogether silently; received altogether silently, as if it
had been a thing of little account. And yet, very literally, it is a
priceless thing. One should look at that side of matters too. Of this
Shakspeare of ours, perhaps the opinion one sometimes hears a little
idolatrously expressed is, in fact, the right one; I think the best judgment
not of this country only, but of Europe at large, is slowly pointing to the
conclusion, that Shakspeare is the chief of all Poets hitherto; the greatest
intellect who, in our recorded world, has left record of himself in the way
of Literature. On the whole, I know not such a power of vision, such a
faculty of thought, if we take all the characters of it, in any other man.
Such a calmness of depth; placid joyous strength; all things imaged in that
great soul of his so true and clear, as in a tranquil unfathomable sea! It
has been said, that in the constructing of Shakspeare's Dramas there is,
apart from all other "faculties" as they are called, an
understanding manifested, equal to that in Bacon's Novum Organum That is
true; and it is not a truth that strikes every one. It would become more
apparent if we tried, any of us for himself, how, out of Shakspeare's
dramatic materials, we could fashion such a result! The built house seems all
so fit, every way as it should be, as if it came there by its own law and
the nature of things, we forget the rude disorderly quarry it was shaped
from. The very perfection of the house, as if Nature herself had made it,
hides the builder's merit. Perfect, more perfect than any other man, we may
call Shakspeare in this: he discerns, knows as by instinct, what condition he
works under, what his materials are, what his own force and its relation to
them is. It is not a transitory glance of insight that will suffice; it is
deliberate illumination of the whole matter; it is a calmly seeing eye; a
great intellect, in short. How a man, of some wide thing that he has
witnessed, will construct a narrative, what kind of picture and delineation
he will give of it, is the best measure you could get of what intellect is
in the man. Which circumstance is vital and shall stand prominent; which
unessential, fit to be suppressed; where is the true beginning, the true
sequence and ending? To find out this, you task the whole force of insight
that is in the man. He must understand the thing; according to the depth of
his understanding, will the fitness of his answer be. You will try him so.
Does like join itself to like; does the spirit of method stir in that
confusion, so that its embroilment becomes order? Can the man say, Fiat lux,
Let there be light; and out of chaos make a world? Precisely as there is
light in himself, will he accomplish this. Or indeed we may say again, it is
in what I called Portrait-painting, delineating of men and things, especially
of men, that Shakspeare is great. All the greatness of the man comes out
decisively here. It is unexampled, I think, that calm creative perspicacity
of Shakspeare. The thing he looks at reveals not this or that face of it, but
its inmost heart, and generic secret: it dissolves itself as in light before
him, so that he discerns the perfect structure of it. Creative, we said:
poetic creation, what is this too but seeing the thing sufficiently? The word
that will describe the thing, follows of itself from such clear intense sight
of the thing. And is not Shakspeare's morality, his valor, candor, tolerance,
truthfulness; his whole victorious strength and greatness, which can triumph
over such obstructions, visible there too? Great as the world. No twisted,
poor convex-concave mirror, reflecting all objects with its own convexities
and concavities; a perfectly level mirror; that is to say withal, if we will
understand it, a man justly related to all things and men, a good man. It is
truly a lordly spectacle how this great soul takes in all kinds of men and
objects, a Falstaff, an Othello, a Juliet, a Coriolanus; sets them all forth
to us in their round completeness; loving, just, the equal brother of all.
Novum Organum, and all the intellect you will find in Bacon, is of a quite
secondary order; earthy, material, poor in comparison with this. Among modern
men, one finds, in strictness, almost nothing of the same rank. Goethe alone,
since the days of Shakspeare, reminds me of it. Of him too you say that he
saw the object; you may say what he himself says of Shakspeare: "His
characters are like watches with dial-plates of transparent crystal; they
show you the hour like others, and the inward mechanism also is all
visible." The seeing eye! It is this that discloses the inner harmony of
things; what Nature meant, what musical idea Nature has wrapped up in these
often rough embodiments. Something she did mean. To the seeing eye that
something were discernible. Are they base, miserable things? You can laugh
over them, you can weep over them; you can in some way or other genially
relate yourself to them; you can, at lowest, hold your peace about them,
turn away your own and others' face from them, till the hour come for
practically exterminating and extinguishing them! At bottom, it is the Poet's
first gift, as it is all men's, that he have intellect enough. He will be a
Poet if he have: a Poet in word; or failing that, perhaps still better, a
Poet in act. Whether he write at all; and if so, whether in prose or in
verse, will depend on accidents: who knows on what extremely trivial
accidents, perhaps on his having had a singing-master, on his being taught
to sing in his boyhood! But the faculty which enables him to discern the
inner heart of things, and the harmony that dwells there (for whatsoever
exists has a harmony in the heart of it, or it would not hold together and
exist), is not the result of habits or accidents, but the gift of Nature
herself; the primary outfit for a Heroic Man in what sort soever. To the
Poet, as to every other, we say first of all, See. If you cannot do that, it
is of no use to keep stringing rhymes together, jingling sensibilities
against each other, and name yourself a Poet; there is no hope for you. If
you can, there is, in prose or verse, in action or speculation, all manner of
hope. The crabbed old Schoolmaster used to ask, when they brought him a new
pupil, "But are ye sure he's not a dunce?" Why, really one might
ask the same thing, in regard to every man proposed for whatsoever function;
and consider it as the one inquiry needful: Are ye sure he's not a dunce?
There is, in this world, no other entirely fatal person. For, in fact, I say
the degree of vision that dwells in a man is a correct measure of the man. If
called to define Shakspeare's faculty, I should say superiority of Intellect,
and think I had included all under that. What indeed are faculties? We talk
of faculties as if they were distinct, things separable; as if a man had
intellect, imagination, fancy, &c., as he has hands, feet and arms. That
is a capital error. Then again, we hear of a man's "intellectual
nature," and of his "moral nature," as if these again were
divisible, and existed apart. Necessities of language do perhaps prescribe
such forms of utterance; we must speak, I am aware, in that way, if we are to
speak at all. But words ought not to harden into things for us. It seems to
me, our apprehension of this matter is, for most part, radically falsified
thereby. We ought to know withal, and to keep forever in mind, that these divisions
are at bottom but names; that man's spiritual nature, the vital Force which
dwells in him, is essentially one and indivisible; that what we call
imagination, fancy, understanding, and so forth, are but different figures of
the same Power of Insight, all indissolubly connected with each other,
physiognomically related; that if we knew one of them, we might know all of
them. Morality itself, what we call the moral quality of a man, what is this
but another side of the one vital Force whereby he is and works? All that a
man does is physiognomical of him. You may see how a man would fight, by the
way in which he sings; his courage, or want of courage, is visible in the
word he utters, in the opinion he has formed, no less than in the stroke he
strikes. He is one; and preaches the same Self abroad in all these ways.
Without hands a man might have feet, and could still walk: but, consider it,
without morality, intellect were impossible for him; a thoroughly immoral
man could not know anything at all! To know a thing, what we can call
knowing, a man must first love the thing, sympathize with it: that is, be
virtuously related to it. If he have not the justice to put down his own
selfishness at every turn, the courage to stand by the dangerous-true at
every turn, how shall he know? His virtues, all of them, will lie recorded in
his knowledge. Nature, with her truth, remains to the bad, to the selfish and
the pusillanimous forever a sealed book: what such can know of Nature is
mean, superficial, small; for the uses of the day merely. But does not the
very Fox know something of Nature? Exactly so: it knows where the geese
lodge! The human Reynard, very frequent everywhere in the world, what more
does he know but this and the like of this? Nay, it should be considered too,
that if the Fox had not a certain vulpine morality, he could not even know
where the geese were, or get at the geese! If he spent his time in splenetic
atrabiliar reflections on his own misery, his ill usage by Nature, Fortune
and other Foxes, and so forth; and had not courage, promptitude,
practicality, and other suitable vulpine gifts and graces, he would catch no
geese. We may say of the Fox too, that his morality and insight are of the
same dimensions; different faces of the same internal unity of vulpine life!
These things are worth stating; for the contrary of them acts with manifold
very baleful perversion, in this time: what limitations, modifications they
require, your own candor will supply. If I say, therefore, that Shakspeare is
the greatest of Intellects, I have said all concerning him. But there is more
in Shakspeare's intellect than we have yet seen. It is what I call an
unconscious intellect; there is more virtue in it than he himself is aware
of. Novalis beautifully remarks of him, that those Dramas of his are Products
of Nature too, deep as Nature herself. I find a great truth in this saying.
Shakspeare's Art is not Artifice; the noblest worth of it is not there by
plan or precontrivance. It grows up from the deeps of Nature, through this
noble sincere soul, who is a voice of Nature. The latest generations of men
will find new meanings in Shakspeare, new elucidations of their own human
being; "new harmonies with the infinite structure of the Universe;
concurrences with later ideas, affinities with the higher powers and senses
of man." This well deserves meditating. It is Nature's highest reward to
a true simple great soul, that he get thus to be a part of herself. Such a
man's works, whatsoever he with utmost conscious exertion and forethought
shall accomplish, grow up withal unconsciously, from the unknown deeps in
him; as the oak-tree grows from the Earth's bosom, as the mountains and
waters shape themselves; with a symmetry grounded on Nature's own laws,
conformable to all Truth whatsoever. How much in Shakspeare lies hid; his
sorrows, his silent struggles known to himself; much that was not known at
all, not speakable at all: like roots, like sap and forces working
underground! Speech is great; but Silence is greater. Withal the joyful
tranquillity of this man is notable. I will not blame Dante for his misery:
it is as battle without victory; but true battle, the first, indispensable
thing. Yet I call Shakspeare greater than Dante, in that he fought truly, and
did conquer. Doubt it not, he had his own sorrows: those Sonnets of his will
even testify expressly in what deep waters he had waded, and swum struggling
for his life; as what man like him ever failed to have to do? It seems to me
a heedless notion, our common one, that he sat like a bird on the bough; and
sang forth, free and off-hand, never knowing the troubles of other men. Not
so; with no man is it so. How could a man travel forward from rustic
deer-poaching to such tragedy-writing, and not fall in with sorrows by the way?
Or, still better, how could a man delineate a Hamlet, a Coriolanus, a
Macbeth, so many suffering heroic hearts, if his own heroic heart had never
suffered? And now, in contrast with all this, observe his mirthfulness, his
genuine overflowing love of laughter! You would say, in no point does he
exaggerate but only in laughter. Fiery objurgations, words that pierce and
burn, are to be found in Shakspeare; yet he is always in measure here; never
what Johnson would remark as a specially "good hater." But his
laughter seems to pour from him in floods; he heaps all manner of ridiculous
nicknames on the butt he is bantering, tumbles and tosses him in all sorts of
horse-play; you would say, with his whole heart laughs. And then, if not
always the finest, it is always a genial laughter. Not at mere weakness, at
misery or poverty; never. No man who can laugh, what we call laughing, will
laugh at these things. It is some poor character only desiring to laugh, and
have the credit of wit, that does so. Laughter means sympathy; good laughter
is not "the crackling of thorns under the pot." Even at stupidity
and pretension this Shakspeare does not laugh otherwise than genially.
Dogberry and Verges tickle our very hearts; and we dismiss them covered with
explosions of laughter: but we like the poor fellows only the better for our
laughing; and hope they will get on well there, and continue Presidents of
the City-watch. Such laughter, like sunshine on the deep sea, is very
beautiful to me. We have no room to speak of Shakspeare's individual
works; though perhaps there is much still waiting to be said on that head.
Had we, for instance, all his plays reviewed as Hamlet, in Wilhelm Meister,
is! A thing which might, one day, be done. August Wilhelm Schlegel has a
remark on his Historical Plays, Henry Fifth and the others, which is worth
remembering. He calls them a kind of National Epic. Marlborough, you
recollect, said, he knew no English History but what he had learned from
Shakspeare. There are really, if we look to it, few as memorable Histories.
The great salient points are admirably seized; all rounds itself off, into a
kind of rhythmic coherence; it is, as Schlegel says, epic; as indeed all
delineation by a great thinker will be. There are right beautiful things in
those Pieces, which indeed together form one beautiful thing. That battle of
Agincourt strikes me as one of the most perfect things, in its sort, we
anywhere have of Shakspeare's. The description of the two hosts: the
worn-out, jaded English; the dread hour, big with destiny, when the battle
shall begin; and then that deathless valor: "Ye good yeomen, whose limbs
were made in England!" There is a noble Patriotism in it, far other
than the "indifference" you sometimes hear ascribed to Shakspeare.
A true English heart breathes, calm and strong, through the whole business;
not boisterous, protrusive; all the better for that. There is a sound in it
like the ring of steel. This man too had a right stroke in him, had it come
to that! But I will say, of Shakspeare's works generally, that we have no
full impress of him there; even as full as we have of many men. His works are
so many windows, through which we see a glimpse of the world that was in him.
All his works seem, comparatively speaking, cursory, imperfect, written under
cramping circumstances; giving only here and there a note of the full
utterance of the man. Passages there are that come upon you like splendor out
of Heaven; bursts of radiance, illuminating the very heart of the thing: you
say, "That is true, spoken once and forever; wheresoever and whensoever
there is an open human soul, that will be recognized as true!" Such
bursts, however, make us feel that the surrounding matter is not radiant;
that it is, in part, temporary, conventional. Alas, Shakspeare had to write
for the Globe Playhouse: his great soul had to crush itself, as it could,
into that and no other mould. It was with him, then, as it is with us all. No
man works save under conditions. The sculptor cannot set his own free Thought
before us; but his Thought as he could translate it into the stone that was
given, with the tools that were given. Disjecta membra are all that we find
of any Poet, or of any man. Whoever looks intelligently at this Shakspeare may
recognize that he too was a Prophet, in his way; of an insight analogous to
the Prophetic, though he took it up in another strain. Nature seemed to this
man also divine; unspeakable, deep as Tophet, high as Heaven; "We are
such stuff as Dreams are made of!" That scroll in Westminster Abbey,
which few read with understanding, is of the depth of any seer. But the man
sang; did not preach, except musically. We called Dante the melodious Priest
of Middle-Age Catholicism. May we not call Shakspeare the still more
melodious Priest of a true Catholicism, the "Universal Church" of
the Future and of all times? No narrow superstition, harsh asceticism,
intolerance, fanatical fierceness or perversion: a Revelation, so far as it
goes, that such a thousand-fold hidden beauty and divineness dwells in all
Nature; which let all men worship as they can! We may say without offence,
that there rises a kind of universal Psalm out of this Shakspeare too; not
unfit to make itself heard among the still more sacred Psalms. Not in
disharmony with these, if we understood them, but in harmony! I cannot call
this Shakspeare a "Sceptic," as some do; his indifference to the
creeds and theological quarrels of his time misleading them. No: neither
unpatriotic, though he says little about his Patriotism; nor sceptic, though
he says little about his Faith. Such "indifference" was the fruit
of his greatness withal: his whole heart was in his own grand sphere of
worship (we may call it such); these other controversies, vitally important
to other men, were not vital to him. But call it worship, call it what you
will, is it not a right glorious thing, and set of things, this that
Shakspeare has brought us? For myself, I feel that there is actually a kind
of sacredness in the fact of such a man being sent into this Earth. Is he not
an eye to us all; a blessed heaven-sent Bringer of Light? And, at bottom,
was it not perhaps far better that this Shakspeare, every way an unconscious
man, was conscious of no Heavenly message? He did not feel, like Mahomet,
because he saw into those internal Splendors, that he specially was the
"Prophet of God:" and was he not greater than Mahomet in that?
Greater; and also, if we compute strictly, as we did in Dante's case, more
successful. It was intrinsically an error that notion of Mahomet's, of his
supreme Prophethood; and has come down to us inextricably involved in error
to this day; dragging along with it such a coil of fables, impurities,
intolerances, as makes it a questionable step for me here and now to say, as
I have done, that Mahomet was a true Speaker at all, and not rather an
ambitious charlatan, perversity and simulacrum; no Speaker, but a Babbler!
Even in Arabia, as I compute, Mahomet will have exhausted himself and become
obsolete, while this Shakspeare, this Dante may still be young; while this
Shakspeare may still pretend to be a Priest of Mankind, of Arabia as of other
places, for unlimited periods to come! Compared with any speaker or singer
one knows, even with Aeschylus or Homer, why should he not, for veracity and
universality, last like them? He is sincere as they; reaches deep down like
them, to the universal and perennial. But as for Mahomet, I think it had been
better for him not to be so conscious! Alas, poor Mahomet; all that he was
conscious of was a mere error; a futility and triviality, as indeed such
ever is. The truly great in him too was the unconscious: that he was a wild
Arab lion of the desert, and did speak out with that great thunder-voice of
his, not by words which he thought to be great, but by actions, by feelings, by
a history which were great! His Koran has become a stupid piece of prolix
absurdity; we do not believe, like him, that God wrote that! The Great Man
here too, as always, is a Force of Nature. whatsoever is truly great in him
springs up from the inarticulate deeps. Well: this is our poor Warwickshire Peasant, who
rose to be Manager of a Playhouse, so that he could live without begging;
whom the Earl of Southampton cast some kind glances on; whom Sir Thomas Lucy,
many thanks to him, was for sending to the Treadmill! We did not account him
a god, like Odin, while he dwelt with us; on which point there were much to
be said. But I will say rather, or repeat: In spite of the sad state
Hero-worship now lies in, consider what this Shakspeare has actually become among
us. Which Englishman we ever made, in this land of ours, which million of
Englishmen, would we not give up rather than the Stratford Peasant? There is
no regiment of highest Dignitaries that we would sell him for. He is the
grandest thing we have yet done. For our honor among foreign nations, as an
ornament to our English Household, what item is there that we would not
surrender rather than him? Consider now, if they asked us, Will you give up
your Indian Empire or your Shakspeare, you English; never have had any Indian
Empire, or never have had any Shakspeare? Really it were a grave question.
Official persons would answer doubtless in official language; but we, for our
part too, should not we be forced to answer: Indian Empire, or no Indian
Empire; we cannot do without Shakspeare! Indian Empire will go, at any rate,
some day; but this Shakspeare does not go, he lasts forever with us; we
cannot give up our Shakspeare! Nay, apart from spiritualities; and
considering him merely as a real, marketable, tangibly useful possession.
England, before long, this Island of ours, will hold but a small fraction of
the English: in America, in New Holland, east and west to the very Antipodes,
there will be a Saxondom covering great spaces of the Globe. And now, what is
it that can keep all these together into virtually one Nation, so that they
do not fall out and fight, but live at peace, in brotherlike intercourse,
helping one another? This is justly regarded as the greatest practical
problem, the thing all manner of sovereignties and governments are here to
accomplish: what is it that will accomplish this? Acts of Parliament,
administrative prime-ministers cannot. America is parted from us, so far as
Parliament could part it. Call it not fantastic, for there is much reality in
it: Here, I say, is an English King, whom no time or chance, Parliament or
combination of Parliaments, can dethrone! This King Shakspeare, does not he
shine, in crowned sovereignty, over us all, as the noblest, gentlest, yet
strongest of rallying-signs; indestructible; really more valuable in that
point of view than any other means or appliance whatsoever? We can fancy him
as radiant aloft over all the Nations of Englishmen, a thousand years hence.
From Paramatta, from New York, wheresoever, under what sort of
Parish-Constable soever, English men and women are, they will say to one
another: "Yes, this Shakspeare is ours; we produced him, we speak and
think by him; we are of one blood and kind with him." The most
common-sense politician, too, if he pleases, may think of that. Yes, truly,
it is a great thing for a Nation that it get an articulate voice; that it
produce a man who will speak forth melodiously what the heart of it means!
Italy, for example, poor Italy lies dismembered, scattered asunder, not
appearing in any protocol or treaty as a unity at all; yet the noble Italy is
actually one: Italy produced its Dante; Italy can speak! The Czar of all the
Russias, he is strong with so many bayonets, Cossacks and cannons; and does a
great feat in keeping such a tract of Earth politically together; but he
cannot yet speak. Something great in him, but it is a dumb greatness. He has
had no voice of genius, to be heard of all men and times. He must learn to
speak. He is a great dumb monster hitherto. His cannons and Cossacks will all
have rusted into nonentity, while that Dante's voice is still audible. The
Nation that has a Dante is bound together as no dumb Russia can be. We must
here end what we had to say of the Hero-Poet. |
|
|
[May 15, 1840.] Lecture IV. The Hero As Priest.
Luther; Reformation: Knox; Puritanism.
Our present discourse is to be of the Great Man as
Priest. We have repeatedly endeavored to explain that all sorts of Heroes are
intrinsically of the same material; that given a great soul, open to the Divine
Significance of Life, then there is given a man fit to speak of this, to sing
of this, to fight and work for this, in a great, victorious, enduring manner;
there is given a Hero, the outward shape of whom will depend on the time and
the environment he finds himself in. The Priest too, as I understand it, is a
kind of Prophet; in him too there is required to be a light of inspiration, as
we must name it. He presides over the worship of the people; is the Uniter of
them with the Unseen Holy. He is the spiritual Captain of the people; as the
Prophet is their spiritual King with many captains: he guides them heavenward,
by wise guidance through this Earth and its work. The ideal of him is, that he
too be what we can call a voice from the unseen Heaven; interpreting, even as
the Prophet did, and in a more familiar manner unfolding the same to men. The
unseen Heaven, the "open secret of the Universe," which so few have
an eye for! He is the Prophet shorn of his more awful splendor; burning with
mild equable radiance, as the enlightener of daily life. This, I say, is the
ideal of a Priest. So in old times; so in these, and in all times. One knows
very well that, in reducing ideals to practice, great latitude of tolerance is
needful; very great. But a Priest who is not this at all, who does not any
longer aim or try to be this, is a character of whom we had rather not speak
in this place. Luther and Knox were by express vocation Priests, and did
faithfully perform that function in its common sense. Yet it will suit us
better here to consider them chiefly in their historical character, rather as
Reformers than Priests. There have been other Priests perhaps equally notable,
in calmer times, for doing faithfully the office of a Leader of Worship;
bringing down, by faithful heroism in that kind, a light from Heaven into the
daily life of their people; leading them forward, as under God's guidance, in
the way wherein they were to go. But when this same way was a rough one, of
battle, confusion and danger, the spiritual Captain, who led through that,
becomes, especially to us who live under the fruit of his leading, more notable
than any other. He is the warfaring and battling Priest; who led his people,
not to quiet faithful labor as in smooth times, but to faithful valorous
conflict, in times all violent, dismembered: a more perilous service, and a
more memorable one, be it higher or not. These two men we will account our best
Priests, inasmuch as they were our best Reformers. Nay I may ask, Is not every
true Reformer, by the nature of him, a Priest first of all? He appeals to
Heaven's invisible justice against Earth's visible force; knows that it, the
invisible, is strong and alone strong. He is a believer in the divine truth of
things; a seer, seeing through the shows of things; a worshipper, in one way or
the other, of the divine truth of things; a Priest, that is. If he be not first
a Priest, he will never be good for much as a Reformer. Thus then, as we have
seen Great Men, in various situations, building up Religions, heroic Forms of
human Existence in this world, Theories of Life worthy to be sung by a Dante,
Practices of Life by a Shakspeare, we are now to see the reverse process;
which also is necessary, which also may be carried on in the Heroic manner.
Curious how this should be necessary: yet necessary it is. The mild shining of
the Poet's light has to give place to the fierce lightning of the Reformer:
unfortunately the Reformer too is a personage that cannot fail in History! The
Poet indeed, with his mildness, what is he but the product and ultimate
adjustment of Reform, or Prophecy, with its fierceness? No wild Saint Dominics
and Thebaid Eremites, there had been no melodious Dante; rough Practical
Endeavor, Scandinavian and other, from Odin to Walter Raleigh, from Ulfila to
Cranmer, enabled Shakspeare to speak. Nay the finished Poet, I remark
sometimes, is a symptom that his epoch itself has reached perfection and is
finished; that before long there will be a new epoch, new Reformers needed.
Doubtless it were finer, could we go along always in the way of music; be tamed
and taught by our Poets, as the rude creatures were by their Orpheus of old. Or
failing this rhythmic musical way, how good were it could we get so much as
into the equable way; I mean, if peaceable Priests, reforming from day to day,
would always suffice us! But it is not so; even this latter has not yet been
realized. Alas, the battling Reformer too is, from time to time, a needful and
inevitable phenomenon. Obstructions are never wanting: the very things that
were once indispensable furtherances become obstructions; and need to be shaken
off, and left behind us, a business often of enormous difficulty. It is
notable enough, surely, how a Theorem or spiritual Representation, so we may
call it, which once took in the whole Universe, and was completely satisfactory
in all parts of it to the highly discursive acute intellect of Dante, one of
the greatest in the world, had in the course of another century become
dubitable to common intellects; become deniable; and is now, to every one of
us, flatly incredible, obsolete as Odin's Theorem! To Dante, human Existence,
and God's ways with men, were all well represented by those Malebolges,
Purgatorios; to Luther not well. How was this? Why could not Dante's
Catholicism continue; but Luther's Protestantism must needs follow? Alas,
nothing will continue. I do not make much of "Progress of the Species,"
as handled in these times of ours; nor do I think you would care to hear much
about it. The talk on that subject is too often of the most extravagant,
confused sort. Yet I may say, the fact itself seems certain enough; nay we can
trace out the inevitable necessity of it in the nature of things. Every man, as
I have stated somewhere, is not only a learner but a doer: he learns with the
mind given him what has been; but with the same mind he discovers farther, he
invents and devises somewhat of his own. Absolutely without originality there
is no man. No man whatever believes, or can believe, exactly what his
grandfather believed: he enlarges somewhat, by fresh discovery, his view of the
Universe, and consequently his Theorem of the Universe, which is an infinite Universe,
and can never be embraced wholly or finally by any view or Theorem, in any
conceivable enlargement: he enlarges somewhat, I say; finds somewhat that was
credible to his grandfather incredible to him, false to him, inconsistent with
some new thing he has discovered or observed. It is the history of every man;
and in the history of Mankind we see it summed up into great historical
amounts, revolutions, new epochs. Dante's Mountain of Purgatory does not stand
"in the ocean of the other Hemisphere," when Columbus has once sailed
thither! Men find no such thing extant in the other Hemisphere. It is not
there. It must cease to be believed to be there. So with all beliefs whatsoever
in this world, all Systems of Belief, and Systems of Practice that spring from
these. If we add now the melancholy fact, that when Belief waxes uncertain,
Practice too becomes unsound, and errors, injustices and miseries everywhere
more and more prevail, we shall see material enough for revolution. At all
turns, a man who will do faithfully, needs to believe firmly. If he have to ask
at every turn the world's suffrage; if he cannot dispense with the world's
suffrage, and make his own suffrage serve, he is a poor eye-servant; the work
committed to him will be misdone. Every such man is a daily contributor to the
inevitable downfall. Whatsoever work he does, dishonestly, with an eye to the
outward look of it, is a new offence, parent of new misery to somebody or
other. Offences accumulate till they become insupportable; and are then
violently burst through, cleared off as by explosion. Dante's sublime
Catholicism, incredible now in theory, and defaced still worse by faithless,
doubting and dishonest practice, has to be torn asunder by a Luther,
Shakspeare's noble Feudalism, as beautiful as it once looked and was, has to
end in a French Revolution. The accumulation of offences is, as we say, too
literally exploded, blasted asunder volcanically; and there are long troublous
periods, before matters come to a settlement again. Surely it were mournful
enough to look only at this face of the matter, and find in all human opinions
and arrangements merely the fact that they were uncertain, temporary, subject
to the law of death! At bottom, it is not so: all death, here too we find, is
but of the body, not of the essence or soul; all destruction, by violent
revolution or howsoever it be, is but new creation on a wider scale. Odinism
was Valor; Christianism was Humility, a nobler kind of Valor. No thought that
ever dwelt honestly as true in the heart of man but was an honest insight into
God's truth on man's part, and has an essential truth in it which endures
through all changes, an everlasting possession for us all. And, on the other
hand, what a melancholy notion is that, which has to represent all men, in all
countries and times except our own, as having spent their life in blind
condemnable error, mere lost Pagans, Scandinavians, Mahometans, only that we
might have the true ultimate knowledge! All generations of men were lost and
wrong, only that this present little section of a generation might be saved and
right. They all marched forward there, all generations since the beginning of
the world, like the Russian soldiers into the ditch of Schweidnitz Fort, only
to fill up the ditch with their dead bodies, that we might march over and take
the place! It is an incredible hypothesis. Such incredible hypothesis we have
seen maintained with fierce emphasis; and this or the other poor individual
man, with his sect of individual men, marching as over the dead bodies of all
men, towards sure victory but when he too, with his hypothesis and ultimate
infallible credo, sank into the ditch, and became a dead body, what was to be
said? Withal, it is an important fact in the nature of man, that he tends to reckon
his own insight as final, and goes upon it as such. He will always do it, I
suppose, in one or the other way; but it must be in some wider, wiser way than
this. Are not all true men that live, or that ever lived, soldiers of the same
army, enlisted, under Heaven's captaincy, to do battle against the same enemy,
the empire of Darkness and Wrong? Why should we misknow one another, fight not
against the enemy but against ourselves, from mere difference of uniform? All
uniforms shall be good, so they hold in them true valiant men. All fashions of
arms, the Arab turban and swift scimetar, Thor's strong hammer smiting down
Jotuns, shall be welcome. Luther's battle-voice, Dante's march-melody, all
genuine things are with us, not against us. We are all under one Captain.
soldiers of the same host. Let us now look a little at this Luther's fighting;
what kind of battle it was, and how he comported himself in it. Luther too was
of our spiritual Heroes; a Prophet to his country and time.
As introductory to the whole, a remark about Idolatry
will perhaps be in place here. One of Mahomet's characteristics, which indeed
belongs to all Prophets, is unlimited implacable zeal against Idolatry. It is
the grand theme of Prophets: Idolatry, the worshipping of dead Idols as the
Divinity, is a thing they cannot away with, but have to denounce continually,
and brand with inexpiable reprobation; it is the chief of all the sins they see
done under the sun. This is worth noting. We will not enter here into the
theological question about Idolatry. Idol is Eidolon, a thing seen, a symbol.
It is not God, but a Symbol of God; and perhaps one may question whether any
the most benighted mortal ever took it for more than a Symbol. I fancy, he did
not think that the poor image his own hands had made was God; but that God was
emblemed by it, that God was in it some way or other. And now in this sense,
one may ask, Is not all worship whatsoever a worship by Symbols, by eidola, or
things seen? Whether seen, rendered visible as an image or picture to the
bodily eye; or visible only to the inward eye, to the imagination, to the
intellect: this makes a superficial, but no substantial difference. It is still
a Thing Seen, significant of Godhead; an Idol. The most rigorous Puritan has
his Confession of Faith, and intellectual Representation of Divine things, and
worships thereby; thereby is worship first made possible for him. All creeds,
liturgies, religious forms, conceptions that fitly invest religious feelings,
are in this sense eidola, things seen. All worship whatsoever must proceed by
Symbols, by Idols: we may say, all Idolatry is comparative, and the worst
Idolatry is only more idolatrous. Where, then, lies the evil of it? Some fatal
evil must lie in it, or earnest prophetic men would not on all hands so
reprobate it. Why is Idolatry so hateful to Prophets? It seems to me as if, in
the worship of those poor wooden symbols, the thing that had chiefly provoked
the Prophet, and filled his inmost soul with indignation and aversion, was not
exactly what suggested itself to his own thought, and came out of him in words
to others, as the thing. The rudest heathen that worshipped Canopus, or the
Caabah Black-Stone, he, as we saw, was superior to the horse that worshipped
nothing at all! Nay there was a kind of lasting merit in that poor act of his;
analogous to what is still meritorious in Poets: recognition of a certain
endless divine beauty and significance in stars and all natural objects
whatsoever. Why should the Prophet so mercilessly condemn him? The poorest
mortal worshipping his Fetish, while his heart is full of it, may be an object
of pity, of contempt and avoidance, if you will; but cannot surely be an object
of hatred. Let his heart be honestly full of it, the whole space of his dark narrow
mind illuminated thereby; in one word, let him entirely believe in his Fetish,
it will then be, I should say, if not well with him, yet as well as it can
readily be made to be, and you will leave him alone, unmolested there. But here
enters the fatal circumstance of Idolatry, that, in the era of the Prophets, no
man's mind is any longer honestly filled with his Idol or Symbol. Before the
Prophet can arise who, seeing through it, knows it to be mere wood, many men
must have begun dimly to doubt that it was little more. Condemnable Idolatry is
insincere Idolatry. Doubt has eaten out the heart of it: a human soul is seen
clinging spasmodically to an Ark of the Covenant, which it half feels now to
have become a Phantasm. This is one of the balefulest sights. Souls are no
longer filled with their Fetish; but only pretend to be filled, and would fain
make themselves feel that they are filled. "You do not believe," said
Coleridge; "you only believe that you believe." It is the final scene
in all kinds of Worship and Symbolism; the sure symptom that death is now nigh.
It is equivalent to what we call Formulism, and Worship of Formulas, in these
days of ours. No more immoral act can be done by a human creature; for it is
the beginning of all immorality, or rather it is the impossibility henceforth
of any morality whatsoever: the innermost moral soul is paralyzed thereby, cast
into fatal magnetic sleep! Men are no longer sincere men. I do not wonder that
the earnest man denounces this, brands it, prosecutes it with inextinguishable
aversion. He and it, all good and it, are at death-feud. Blamable Idolatry is
Cant, and even what one may call Sincere-Cant. Sincere-Cant: that is worth
thinking of! Every sort of Worship ends with this phasis. I find Luther to have
been a Breaker of Idols, no less than any other Prophet. The wooden gods of the
Koreish, made of timber and bees-wax, were not more hateful to Mahomet than
Tetzel's Pardons of Sin, made of sheepskin and ink, were to Luther. It is the
property of every Hero, in every time, in every place and situation, that he
come back to reality; that he stand upon things, and not shows of things.
According as he loves, and venerates, articulately or with deep speechless
thought, the awful realities of things, so will the hollow shows of things,
however regular, decorous, accredited by Koreishes or Conclaves, be intolerable
and detestable to him. Protestantism, too, is the work of a Prophet: the
prophet-work of that sixteenth century. The first stroke of honest demolition
to an ancient thing grown false and idolatrous; preparatory afar off to a new
thing, which shall be true, and authentically divine! At first view it might
seem as if Protestantism were entirely destructive to this that we call
Hero-worship, and represent as the basis of all possible good, religious or
social, for mankind. One often hears it said that Protestantism introduced a
new era, radically different from any the world had ever seen before: the era
of "private judgment," as they call it. By this revolt against the
Pope, every man became his own Pope; and learnt, among other things, that he
must never trust any Pope, or spiritual Hero-captain, any more! Whereby, is not
spiritual union, all hierarchy and subordination among men, henceforth an
impossibility? So we hear it said. Now I need not deny that Protestantism was
a revolt against spiritual sovereignties, Popes and much else. Nay I will grant
that English Puritanism, revolt against earthly sovereignties, was the second
act of it; that the enormous French Revolution itself was the third act,
whereby all sovereignties earthly and spiritual were, as might seem, abolished
or made sure of abolition. Protestantism is the grand root from which our whole
subsequent European History branches out. For the spiritual will always body
itself forth in the temporal history of men; the spiritual is the beginning of
the temporal. And now, sure enough, the cry is everywhere for Liberty and
Equality, Independence and so forth; instead of Kings, Ballot-boxes and
Electoral suffrages: it seems made out that any Hero-sovereign, or loyal
obedience of men to a man, in things temporal or things spiritual, has passed
away forever from the world. I should despair of the world altogether, if so.
One of my deepest convictions is, that it is not so. Without sovereigns, true
sovereigns, temporal and spiritual, I see nothing possible but an anarchy; the
hatefulest of things. But I find Protestantism, whatever anarchic democracy it
have produced, to be the beginning of new genuine sovereignty and order. I find
it to be a revolt against false sovereigns; the painful but indispensable first
preparative for true sovereigns getting place among us! This is worth
explaining a little. Let us remark, therefore, in the first place, that this of
"private judgment" is, at bottom, not a new thing in the world, but
only new at that epoch of the world. There is nothing generically new or
peculiar in the Reformation; it was a return to Truth and Reality in opposition
to Falsehood and Semblance, as all kinds of Improvement and genuine Teaching
are and have been. Liberty of private judgment, if we will consider it, must at
all times have existed in the world. Dante had not put out his eyes, or tied
shackles on himself; he was at home in that Catholicism of his, a free-seeing
soul in it, if many a poor Hogstraten, Tetzel, and Dr. Eck had now become
slaves in it. Liberty of judgment? No iron chain, or outward force of any kind,
could ever compel the soul of a man to believe or to disbelieve: it is his own
indefeasible light, that judgment of his; he will reign, and believe there, by
the grace of God alone! The sorriest sophistical Bellarmine, preaching
sightless faith and passive obedience, must first, by some kind of conviction,
have abdicated his right to be convinced. His "private judgment"
indicated that, as the advisablest step he could take. The right of private
judgment will subsist, in full force, wherever true men subsist. A true man
believes with his whole judgment, with all the illumination and discernment that
is in him, and has always so believed. A false man, only struggling to
"believe that he believes," will naturally manage it in some other
way. Protestantism said to this latter, Woe! and to the former, Well done! At
bottom, it was no new saying; it was a return to all old sayings that ever had
been said. Be genuine, be sincere: that was, once more, the meaning of it.
Mahomet believed with his whole mind; Odin with his whole mind, he, and all
true Followers of Odinism. They, by their private judgment, had "judged
" so. And now I venture to assert, that the exercise of private judgment,
faithfully gone about, does by no means necessarily end in selfish
independence, isolation; but rather ends necessarily in the opposite of that.
It is not honest inquiry that makes anarchy; but it is error, insincerity,
half-belief and untruth that make it. A man protesting against error is on the
way towards uniting himself with all men that believe in truth. There is no
communion possible among men who believe only in hearsays. The heart of each is
lying dead; has no power of sympathy even with things, or he would believe
them and not hearsays. No sympathy even with things; how much less with his
fellow-men! He cannot unite with men; he is an anarchic man. Only in a world of
sincere men is unity possible; and there, in the long-run, it is as good as
certain. For observe one thing, a thing too often left out of view, or rather
altogether lost sight of in this controversy: That it is not necessary a man
should himself have discovered the truth he is to believe in, and never so
sincerely to believe in. A Great Man, we said, was always sincere, as the first
condition of him. But a man need not be great in order to be sincere; that is
not the necessity of Nature and all Time, but only of certain corrupt
unfortunate epochs of Time. A man can believe, and make his own, in the most
genuine way, what he has received from another; and with boundless gratitude
to that other! The merit of originality is not novelty; it is sincerity. The
believing man is the original man; whatsoever he believes, he believes it for
himself, not for another. Every son of Adam can become a sincere man, an
original man, in this sense; no mortal is doomed to be an insincere man. Whole
ages, what we call ages of Faith, are original; all men in them, or the most of
men in them, sincere. These are the great and fruitful ages: every worker, in
all spheres, is a worker not on semblance but on substance; every work issues
in a result: the general sum of such work is great; for all of it, as genuine,
tends towards one goal; all of it is additive, none of it subtractive. There is
true union, true kingship, loyalty, all true and blessed things, so far as the
poor Earth can produce blessedness for men. Hero-worship? Ah me, that a man be
self-subsistent, original, true, or what we call it, is surely the farthest in
the world from indisposing him to reverence and believe other men's truth! It
only disposes, necessitates and invincibly compels him to disbelieve other men's
dead formulas, hearsays and untruths. A man embraces truth with his eyes open,
and because his eyes are open: does he need to shut them before he can love his
Teacher of truth? He alone can love, with a right gratitude and genuine loyalty
of soul, the Hero-Teacher who has delivered him out of darkness into light. Is
not such a one a true Hero and Serpent-queller; worthy of all reverence! The
black monster, Falsehood, our one enemy in this world, lies prostrate by his
valor; it was he that conquered the world for us! See, accordingly, was not
Luther himself reverenced as a true Pope, or Spiritual Father, being verily
such? Napoleon, from amid boundless revolt of Sansculottism, became a King.
Hero-worship never dies, nor can die. Loyalty and Sovereignty are everlasting
in the world: and there is this in them, that they are grounded not on
garnitures and semblances, but on realities and sincerities. Not by shutting
your eyes, your "private judgment;" no, but by opening them, and by
having something to see! Luther's message was deposition and abolition to all
false Popes and Potentates, but life and strength, though afar off, to new
genuine ones. All this of Liberty and Equality, Electoral suffrages,
Independence and so forth, we will take, therefore, to be a temporary
phenomenon, by no means a final one. Though likely to last a long time, with
sad enough embroilments for us all, we must welcome it, as the penalty of sins
that are past, the pledge of inestimable benefits that are coming. In all ways,
it behooved men to quit simulacra and return to fact; cost what it might, that
did behoove to be done. With spurious Popes, and Believers having no private
judgment, quacks pretending to command over dupes, what can you do? Misery
and mischief only. You cannot make an association out of insincere men; you
cannot build an edifice except by plummet and level, at right-angles to one
another! In all this wild revolutionary work, from Protestantism downwards, I
see the blessedest result preparing itself: not abolition of Hero-worship, but
rather what I would call a whole World of Heroes. If Hero mean sincere man, why
may not every one of us be a Hero? A world all sincere, a believing world: the
like has been; the like will again be, cannot help being. That were the right
sort of Worshippers for Heroes: never could the truly Better be so reverenced
as where all were True and Good! But we must hasten to Luther and his Life.
Luther's birthplace was Eisleben in Saxony; he came
into the world there on the 10th of November, 1483. It was an accident that
gave this honor to Eisleben. His parents, poor mine-laborers in a village of
that region, named Mohra, had gone to the Eisleben Winter-Fair: in the tumult
of this scene the Frau Luther was taken with travail, found refuge in some poor
house there, and the boy she bore was named MARTIN LUTHER. Strange enough to
reflect upon it. This poor Frau Luther, she had gone with her husband to make
her small merchandisings; perhaps to sell the lock of yarn she had been
spinning, to buy the small winter-necessaries for her narrow hut or household;
in the whole world, that day, there was not a more entirely unimportant-looking
pair of people than this Miner and his Wife. And yet what were all Emperors,
Popes and Potentates, in comparison? There was born here, once more, a Mighty
Man; whose light was to flame as the beacon over long centuries and epochs of
the world; the whole world and its history was waiting for this man. It is
strange, it is great. It leads us back to another Birth-hour, in a still meaner
environment, Eighteen Hundred years ago, of which it is fit that we say
nothing, that we think only in silence; for what words are there! The Age of
Miracles past? The Age of Miracles is forever here! I find it altogether
suitable to Luther's function in this Earth, and doubtless wisely ordered to
that end by the Providence presiding over him and us and all things, that he
was born poor, and brought up poor, one of the poorest of men. He had to beg,
as the school-children in those times did; singing for alms and bread, from
door to door. Hardship, rigorous Necessity was the poor boy's companion; no man
nor no thing would put on a false face to flatter Martin Luther. Among things,
not among the shows of things, had he to grow. A boy of rude figure, yet with
weak health, with his large greedy soul, full of all faculty and sensibility,
he suffered greatly. But it was his task to get acquainted with realities, and
keep acquainted with them, at whatever cost: his task was to bring the whole
world back to reality, for it had dwelt too long with semblance! A youth nursed
up in wintry whirlwinds, in desolate darkness and difficulty, that he may step
forth at last from his stormy Scandinavia, strong as a true man, as a god: a
Christian Odin, a right Thor once more, with his thunder-hammer, to smite
asunder ugly enough Jotuns and Giant-monsters! Perhaps the turning incident of
his life, we may fancy, was that death of his friend Alexis, by lightning, at
the gate of Erfurt. Luther had struggled up through boyhood, better and worse;
displaying, in spite of all hindrances, the largest intellect, eager to learn:
his father judging doubtless that he might promote himself in the world, set
him upon the study of Law. This was the path to rise; Luther, with little will
in it either way, had consented: he was now nineteen years of age. Alexis and
he had been to see the old Luther people at Mansfeldt; were got back again near
Erfurt, when a thunder-storm came on; the bolt struck Alexis, he fell dead at
Luther's feet. What is this Life of ours? gone in a moment, burnt up like a
scroll, into the blank Eternity! What are all earthly preferments,
Chancellorships, Kingships? They lie shrunk together there! The Earth has
opened on them; in a moment they are not, and Eternity is. Luther, struck to
the heart, determined to devote himself to God and God's service alone. In
spite of all dissuasions from his father and others, he became a Monk in the
Augustine Convent at Erfurt. This was probably the first light-point in the history
of Luther, his purer will now first decisively uttering itself; but, for the
present, it was still as one light-point in an element all of darkness. He says
he was a pious monk, ich bin ein frommer Monch gewesen; faithfully, painfully
struggling to work out the truth of this high act of his; but it was to little
purpose. His misery had not lessened; had rather, as it were, increased into
infinitude. The drudgeries he had to do, as novice in his Convent, all sorts of
slave-work, were not his grievance: the deep earnest soul of the man had fallen
into all manner of black scruples, dubitations; he believed himself likely to
die soon, and far worse than die. One hears with a new interest for poor Luther
that, at this time, he lived in terror of the unspeakable misery; fancied that
he was doomed to eternal reprobation. Was it not the humble sincere nature of
the man? What was he, that he should be raised to Heaven! He that had known
only misery, and mean slavery: the news was too blessed to be credible. It
could not become clear to him how, by fasts, vigils, formalities and mass-work,
a man's soul could be saved. He fell into the blackest wretchedness; had to
wander staggering as on the verge of bottomless Despair. It must have been a
most blessed discovery, that of an old Latin Bible which he found in the Erfurt
Library about this time. He had never seen the Book before. It taught him
another lesson than that of fasts and vigils. A brother monk too, of pious
experience, was helpful. Luther learned now that a man was saved not by singing
masses, but by the infinite grace of God: a more credible hypothesis. He
gradually got himself founded, as on the rock. No wonder he should venerate the
Bible, which had brought this blessed help to him. He prized it as the Word of
the Highest must be prized by such a man. He determined to hold by that; as
through life and to death he firmly did. This, then, is his deliverance from
darkness, his final triumph over darkness, what we call his conversion; for
himself the most important of all epochs. That he should now grow daily in
peace and clearness; that, unfolding now the great talents and virtues
implanted in him, he should rise to importance in his Convent, in his country,
and be found more and more useful in all honest business of life, is a natural
result. He was sent on missions by his Augustine Order, as a man of talent and
fidelity fit to do their business well: the Elector of Saxony, Friedrich, named
the Wise, a truly wise and just prince, had cast his eye on him as a valuable
person; made him Professor in his new University of Wittenberg, Preacher too at
Wittenberg; in both which capacities, as in all duties he did, this Luther, in
the peaceable sphere of common life, was gaining more and more esteem with all
good men. It was in his twenty-seventh year that he first saw Rome; being sent
thither, as I said, on mission from his Convent. Pope Julius the Second, and
what was going on at Rome, must have filled the mind of Luther with amazement.
He had come as to the Sacred City, throne of God's High-priest on Earth; and he
found it what we know! Many thoughts it must have given the man; many which we
have no record of, which perhaps he did not himself know how to utter. This
Rome, this scene of false priests, clothed not in the beauty of holiness, but
in far other vesture, is false: but what is it to Luther? A mean man he, how
shall he reform a world? That was far from his thoughts. A humble, solitary
man, why should he at all meddle with the world? It was the task of quite higher
men than he. His business was to guide his own footsteps wisely through the
world. Let him do his own obscure duty in it well; the rest, horrible and
dismal as it looks, is in God's hand, not in his. It is curious to reflect what
might have been the issue, had Roman Popery happened to pass this Luther by; to
go on in its great wasteful orbit, and not come athwart his little path, and
force him to assault it! Conceivable enough that, in this case, he might have
held his peace about the abuses of Rome; left Providence, and God on high, to
deal with them! A modest quiet man; not prompt he to attack irreverently
persons in authority. His clear task, as I say, was to do his own duty; to walk
wisely in this world of confused wickedness, and save his own soul alive. But
the Roman High-priesthood did come athwart him: afar off at Wittenberg he,
Luther, could not get lived in honesty for it; he remonstrated, resisted, came
to extremity; was struck at, struck again, and so it came to wager of battle
between them! This is worth attending to in Luther's history. Perhaps no man of
so humble, peaceable a disposition ever filled the world with contention. We
cannot but see that he would have loved privacy, quiet diligence in the shade;
that it was against his will he ever became a notoriety. Notoriety: what would
that do for him? The goal of his march through this world was the Infinite
Heaven; an indubitable goal for him: in a few years, he should either have
attained that, or lost it forever! We will say nothing at all, I think, of that
sorrowfulest of theories, of its being some mean shopkeeper grudge, of the
Augustine Monk against the Dominican, that first kindled the wrath of Luther,
and produced the Protestant Reformation. We will say to the people who maintain
it, if indeed any such exist now: Get first into the sphere of thought by which
it is so much as possible to judge of Luther, or of any man like Luther,
otherwise than distractedly; we may then begin arguing with you. The Monk
Tetzel, sent out carelessly in the way of trade, by Leo Tenth, who merely
wanted to raise a little money, and for the rest seems to have been a Pagan
rather than a Christian, so far as he was anything, arrived at Wittenberg, and
drove his scandalous trade there. Luther's flock bought Indulgences; in the
confessional of his Church, people pleaded to him that they had already got
their sins pardoned. Luther, if he would not be found wanting at his own post,
a false sluggard and coward at the very centre of the little space of ground
that was his own and no other man's, had to step forth against Indulgences, and
declare aloud that they were a futility and sorrowful mockery, that no man's
sins could be pardoned by them. It was the beginning of the whole Reformation.
We know how it went; forward from this first public challenge of Tetzel, on the
last day of October, 1517, through remonstrance and argument; spreading ever
wider, rising ever higher; till it became unquenchable, and enveloped all the
world. Luther's heart's desire was to have this grief and other griefs amended;
his thought was still far other than that of introducing separation in the
Church, or revolting against the Pope, Father of Christendom. The elegant
Pagan Pope cared little about this Monk and his doctrines; wished, however, to
have done with the noise of him: in a space of some three years, having tried
various softer methods, he thought good to end it by fire. He dooms the Monk's
writings to be burnt by the hangman, and his body to be sent bound to Rome,
probably for a similar purpose. It was the way they had ended with Huss, with
Jerome, the century before. A short argument, fire. Poor Huss: he came to that
Constance Council, with all imaginable promises and safe-conducts; an earnest,
not rebellious kind of man: they laid him instantly in a stone dungeon
"three feet wide, six feet high, seven feet long;" burnt the true
voice of him out of this world; choked it in smoke and fire. That was not well
done! I, for one, pardon Luther for now altogether revolting against the Pope.
The elegant Pagan, by this fire-decree of his, had kindled into noble just
wrath the bravest heart then living in this world. The bravest, if also one of
the humblest, peaceablest; it was now kindled. These words of mine, words of
truth and soberness, aiming faithfully, as human inability would allow, to
promote God's truth on Earth, and save men's souls, you, God's vicegerent on
earth, answer them by the hangman and fire? You will burn me and them, for
answer to the God's-message they strove to bring you? You are not God's
vicegerent; you are another's than his, I think! I take your Bull, as an
emparchmented Lie, and burn it. You will do what you see good next: this is
what I do. It was on the 10th of December, 1520, three years after the
beginning of the business, that Luther, "with a great concourse of
people," took this indignant step of burning the Pope's fire-decree
"at the Elster-Gate of Wittenberg." Wittenberg looked on "with
shoutings;" the whole world was looking on. The Pope should not have provoked
that "shout"! It was the shout of the awakening of nations. The quiet
German heart, modest, patient of much, had at length got more than it could
bear. Formulism, Pagan Popeism, and other Falsehood and corrupt Semblance had
ruled long enough: and here once more was a man found who durst tell all men
that God's-world stood not on semblances but on realities; that Life was a
truth, and not a lie! At bottom, as was said above, we are to consider Luther
as a Prophet Idol-breaker; a bringer-back of men to reality. It is the function
of great men and teachers. Mahomet said, These idols of yours are wood; you put
wax and oil on them, the flies stick on them: they are not God, I tell you,
they are black wood! Luther said to the Pope, This thing of yours that you call
a Pardon of Sins, it is a bit of rag-paper with ink. It is nothing else; it,
and so much like it, is nothing else. God alone can pardon sins. Popeship,
spiritual Fatherhood of God's Church, is that a vain semblance, of cloth and
parchment? It is an awful fact. God's Church is not a semblance, Heaven and
Hell are not semblances. I stand on this, since you drive me to it. Standing on
this, I a poor German Monk am stronger than you all. I stand solitary,
friendless, but on God's Truth; you with your tiaras, triple-hats, with your
treasuries and armories, thunders spiritual and temporal, stand on the Devil's
Lie, and are not so strong! The Diet of Worms, Luther's appearance there on
the 17th of April, 1521, may be considered as the greatest scene in Modern
European History; the point, indeed, from which the whole subsequent history of
civilization takes its rise. After multiplied negotiations, disputations, it
had come to this. The young Emperor Charles Fifth, with all the Princes of
Germany, Papal nuncios, dignitaries spiritual and temporal, are assembled
there: Luther is to appear and answer for himself, whether he will recant or
not. The world's pomp and power sits there on this hand: on that, stands up for
God's Truth, one man, the poor miner Hans Luther's Son. Friends had reminded
him of Huss, advised him not to go; he would not be advised. A large company of
friends rode out to meet him, with still more earnest warnings; he answered,
"Were there as many Devils in Worms as there are roof-tiles, I would
on." The people, on the morrow, as he went to the Hall of the Diet,
crowded the windows and house-tops, some of them calling out to him, in solemn
words, not to recant: "Whosoever denieth me before men!" they cried
to him, as in a kind of solemn petition and adjuration. Was it not in reality
our petition too, the petition of the whole world, lying in dark bondage of
soul, paralyzed under a black spectral Nightmare and triple-hatted Chimera,
calling itself Father in God, and what not: "Free us; it rests with thee;
desert us not!" Luther did not desert us. His speech, of two hours,
distinguished itself by its respectful, wise and honest tone; submissive to
whatsoever could lawfully claim submission, not submissive to any more than
that. His writings, he said, were partly his own, partly derived from the Word
of God. As to what was his own, human infirmity entered into it; unguarded
anger, blindness, many things doubtless which it were a blessing for him could
he abolish altogether. But as to what stood on sound truth and the Word of God,
he could not recant it. How could he? "Confute me," he concluded,
"by proofs of Scripture, or else by plain just arguments: I cannot recant
otherwise. For it is neither safe nor prudent to do aught against conscience.
Here stand I; I can do no other: God assist me!" It is, as we say, the
greatest moment in the Modern History of Men. English Puritanism, England and
its Parliaments, Americas, and vast work these two centuries; French
Revolution, Europe and its work everywhere at present: the germ of it all lay
there: had Luther in that moment done other, it had all been otherwise! The
European World was asking him: Am I to sink ever lower into falsehood, stagnant
putrescence, loathsome accursed death; or, with whatever paroxysm, to cast the
falsehoods out of me, and be cured and live? Great wars, contentions and
disunion followed out of this Reformation; which last down to our day, and are
yet far from ended. Great talk and crimination has been made about these. They
are lamentable, undeniable; but after all, what has Luther or his cause to do
with them? It seems strange reasoning to charge the Reformation with all this.
When Hercules turned the purifying river into King Augeas's stables, I have no
doubt the confusion that resulted was considerable all around: but I think it
was not Hercules's blame; it was some other's blame! The Reformation might
bring what results it liked when it came, but the Reformation simply could not
help coming. To all Popes and Popes' advocates, expostulating, lamenting and
accusing, the answer of the world is: Once for all, your Popehood has become
untrue. No matter how good it was, how good you say it is, we cannot believe
it; the light of our whole mind, given us to walk by from Heaven above, finds
it henceforth a thing unbelievable. We will not believe it, we will not try to
believe it, we dare not! The thing is untrue; we were traitors against the
Giver of all Truth, if we durst pretend to think it true. Away with it; let
whatsoever likes come in the place of it: with it we can have no farther trade!
Luther and his Protestantism is not responsible for wars; the false Simulacra
that forced him to protest, they are responsible. Luther did what every man
that God has made has not only the right, but lies under the sacred duty, to
do: answered a Falsehood when it questioned him, Dost thou believe me? No! At
what cost soever, without counting of costs, this thing behooved to be done.
Union, organization spiritual and material, a far nobler than any Popedom or
Feudalism in their truest days, I never doubt, is coming for the world; sure to
come. But on Fact alone, not on Semblance and Simulacrum, will it be able
either to come, or to stand when come. With union grounded on falsehood, and
ordering us to speak and act lies, we will not have anything to do. Peace? A
brutal lethargy is peaceable, the noisome grave is peaceable. We hope for a
living peace, not a dead one! And yet, in prizing justly the indispensable
blessings of the New, let us not be unjust to the Old. The Old was true, if it
no longer is. In Dante's days it needed no sophistry, self-blinding or other
dishonesty, to get itself reckoned true. It was good then; nay there is in the
soul of it a deathless good. The cry of "No Popery" is foolish enough
in these days. The speculation that Popery is on the increase, building new
chapels and so forth, may pass for one of the idlest ever started. Very
curious: to count up a few Popish chapels, listen to a few Protestant
logic-choppings, to much dull-droning drowsy inanity that still calls itself
Protestant, and say: See, Protestantism is dead; Popeism is more alive than it,
will be alive after it! Drowsy inanities, not a few, that call themselves
Protestant are dead; but Protestantism has not died yet, that I hear of!
Protestantism, if we will look, has in these days produced its Goethe, its
Napoleon; German Literature and the French Revolution; rather considerable
signs of life! Nay, at bottom, what else is alive but Protestantism? The life
of most else that one meets is a galvanic one merely, not a pleasant, not a
lasting sort of life! Popery can build new chapels; welcome to do so, to all
lengths. Popery cannot come back, any more than Paganism can, which also still
lingers in some countries. But, indeed, it is with these things, as with the
ebbing of the sea: you look at the waves oscillating hither, thither on the
beach; for minutes you cannot tell how it is going; look in half an hour where
it is, look in half a century where your Popehood is! Alas, would there were
no greater danger to our Europe than the poor old Pope's revival! Thor may as
soon try to revive. And withal this oscillation has a meaning. The poor old
Popehood will not die away entirely, as Thor has done, for some time yet; nor ought
it. We may say, the Old never dies till this happen, Till all the soul of good
that was in it have got itself transfused into the practical New. While a good
work remains capable of being done by the Romish form; or, what is inclusive of
all, while a pious life remains capable of being led by it, just so long, if we
consider, will this or the other human soul adopt it, go about as a living
witness of it. So long it will obtrude itself on the eye of us who reject it,
till we in our practice too have appropriated whatsoever of truth was in it.
Then, but also not till then, it will have no charm more for any man. It lasts
here for a purpose. Let it last as long as it can. Of Luther I will add now,
in reference to all these wars and bloodshed, the noticeable fact that none of
them began so long as he continued living. The controversy did not get to
fighting so long as he was there. To me it is proof of his greatness in all
senses, this fact. How seldom do we find a man that has stirred up some vast
commotion, who does not himself perish, swept away in it! Such is the usual
course of revolutionists. Luther continued, in a good degree, sovereign of this
greatest revolution; all Protestants, of what rank or function soever, looking
much to him for guidance: and he held it peaceable, continued firm at the
centre of it. A man to do this must have a kingly faculty: he must have the
gift to discern at all turns where the true heart of the matter lies, and to
plant himself courageously on that, as a strong true man, that other true men
may rally round him there. He will not continue leader of men otherwise.
Luther's clear deep force of judgment, his force of all sorts, of silence, of
tolerance and moderation, among others, are very notable in these
circumstances. Tolerance, I say; a very genuine kind of tolerance: he
distinguishes what is essential, and what is not; the unessential may go very
much as it will. A complaint comes to him that such and such a Reformed
Preacher "will not preach without a cassock." Well, answers Luther,
what harm will a cassock do the man? "Let him have a cassock to preach in;
let him have three cassocks if he find benefit in them!" His conduct in
the matter of Karlstadt's wild image-breaking; of the Anabaptists; of the
Peasants' War, shows a noble strength, very different from spasmodic violence.
With sure prompt insight he discriminates what is what: a strong just man, he
speaks forth what is the wise course, and all men follow him in that. Luther's
Written Works give similar testimony of him. The dialect of these speculations
is now grown obsolete for us; but one still reads them with a singular
attraction. And indeed the mere grammatical diction is still legible enough;
Luther's merit in literary history is of the greatest: his dialect became the
language of all writing. They are not well written, these Four-and-twenty
Quartos of his; written hastily, with quite other than literary objects. But in
no Books have I found a more robust, genuine, I will say noble faculty of a man
than in these. A rugged honesty, homeliness, simplicity; a rugged sterling
sense and strength. He dashes out illumination from him; his smiting idiomatic
phrases seem to cleave into the very secret of the matter. Good humor too, nay
tender affection, nobleness and depth: this man could have been a Poet too! He
had to work an Epic Poem, not write one. I call him a great Thinker; as indeed
his greatness of heart already betokens that. Richter says of Luther's words,
"His words are half-battles." They may be called so. The essential
quality of him was, that he could fight and conquer; that he was a right piece
of human Valor. No more valiant man, no mortal heart to be called braver, that
one has record of, ever lived in that Teutonic Kindred, whose character is
valor. His defiance of the "Devils" in Worms was not a mere boast, as
the like might be if now spoken. It was a faith of Luther's that there were
Devils, spiritual denizens of the Pit, continually besetting men. Many times,
in his writings, this turns up; and a most small sneer has been grounded on it
by some. In the room of the Wartburg where he sat translating the Bible, they
still show you a black spot on the wall; the strange memorial of one of these
conflicts. Luther sat translating one of the Psalms; he was worn down with long
labor, with sickness, abstinence from food: there rose before him some hideous
indefinable Image, which he took for the Evil One, to forbid his work: Luther
started up, with fiend-defiance; flung his inkstand at the spectre, and it
disappeared! The spot still remains there; a curious monument of several
things. Any apothecary's apprentice can now tell us what we are to think of
this apparition, in a scientific sense: but the man's heart that dare rise
defiant, face to face, against Hell itself, can give no higher proof of
fearlessness. The thing he will quail before exists not on this Earth or under
it. Fearless enough! "The Devil is aware," writes he on one
occasion, "that this does not proceed out of fear in me. I have seen and
defied innumerable Devils. Duke George," of Leipzig, a great enemy of his,
"Duke George is not equal to one Devil," far short of a Devil!
"If I had business at Leipzig, I would ride into Leipzig, though it rained
Duke Georges for nine days running." What a reservoir of Dukes to ride
into! At the same time, they err greatly who imagine that this man's courage
was ferocity, mere coarse disobedient obstinacy and savagery, as many do. Far
from that. There may be an absence of fear which arises from the absence of
thought or affection, from the presence of hatred and stupid fury. We do not
value the courage of the tiger highly! With Luther it was far otherwise; no
accusation could be more unjust than this of mere ferocious violence brought
against him. A most gentle heart withal, full of pity and love, as indeed the
truly valiant heart ever is. The tiger before a stronger foe flies: the tiger
is not what we call valiant, only fierce and cruel. I know few things more
touching than those soft breathings of affection, soft as a child's or a
mother's, in this great wild heart of Luther. So honest, unadulterated with any
cant; homely, rude in their utterance; pure as water welling from the rock.
What, in fact, was all that down-pressed mood of despair and reprobation, which
we saw in his youth, but the outcome of pre-eminent thoughtful gentleness,
affections too keen and fine? It is the course such men as the poor Poet Cowper
fall into. Luther to a slight observer might have seemed a timid, weak man;
modesty, affectionate shrinking tenderness the chief distinction of him. It is
a noble valor which is roused in a heart like this, once stirred up into
defiance, all kindled into a heavenly blaze. In Luther's Table-Talk, a
posthumous Book of anecdotes and sayings collected by his friends, the most
interesting now of all the Books proceeding from him, we have many beautiful
unconscious displays of the man, and what sort of nature he had. His behavior
at the death-bed of his little Daughter, so still, so great and loving, is
among the most affecting things. He is resigned that his little Magdalene
should die, yet longs inexpressibly that she might live; follows, in
awe-struck thought, the flight of her little soul through those unknown realms.
Awe-struck; most heartfelt, we can see; and sincere, for after all dogmatic
creeds and articles, he feels what nothing it is that we know, or can know: His
little Magdalene shall be with God, as God wills; for Luther too that is all;
Islam is all. Once, he looks out from his solitary Patmos, the Castle of
Coburg, in the middle of the night: The great vault of Immensity, long flights
of clouds sailing through it, dumb, gaunt, huge: who supports all that?
"None ever saw the pillars of it; yet it is supported." God supports
it. We must know that God is great, that God is good; and trust, where we
cannot see. Returning home from Leipzig once, he is struck by the beauty of
the harvest-fields: How it stands, that golden yellow corn, on its fair taper
stem, its golden head bent, all rich and waving there, the meek Earth, at
God's kind bidding, has produced it once again; the bread of man! In the
garden at Wittenberg one evening at sunset, a little bird has perched for the
night: That little bird, says Luther, above it are the stars and deep Heaven of
worlds; yet it has folded its little wings; gone trustfully to rest there as in
its home: the Maker of it has given it too a home! Neither are mirthful turns
wanting: there is a great free human heart in this man. The common speech of
him has a rugged nobleness, idiomatic, expressive, genuine; gleams here and
there with beautiful poetic tints. One feels him to be a great brother man. His
love of Music, indeed, is not this, as it were, the summary of all these
affections in him? Many a wild unutterability he spoke forth from him in the
tones of his flute. The Devils fled from his flute, he says. Death-defiance on
the one hand, and such love of music on the other; I could call these the two
opposite poles of a great soul; between these two all great things had room.
Luther's face is to me expressive of him; in Kranach's best portraits I find
the true Luther. A rude plebeian face; with its huge crag-like brows and bones,
the emblem of rugged energy; at first, almost a repulsive face. Yet in the eyes
especially there is a wild silent sorrow; an unnamable melancholy, the element
of all gentle and fine affections; giving to the rest the true stamp of
nobleness. Laughter was in this Luther, as we said; but tears also were there.
Tears also were appointed him; tears and hard toil. The basis of his life was
Sadness, Earnestness. In his latter days, after all triumphs and victories, he
expresses himself heartily weary of living; he considers that God alone can and
will regulate the course things are taking, and that perhaps the Day of
Judgment is not far. As for him, he longs for one thing: that God would release
him from his labor, and let him depart and be at rest. They understand little
of the man who cite this in discredit of him! I will call this Luther a true
Great Man; great in intellect, in courage, affection and integrity; one of our
most lovable and precious men. Great, not as a hewn obelisk; but as an Alpine
mountain, so simple, honest, spontaneous, not setting up to be great at all;
there for quite another purpose than being great! Ah yes, unsubduable granite,
piercing far and wide into the Heavens; yet in the clefts of it fountains,
green beautiful valleys with flowers! A right Spiritual Hero and Prophet; once
more, a true Son of Nature and Fact, for whom these centuries, and many that
are to come yet, will be thankful to Heaven.
The most interesting phasis
which the Reformation anywhere assumes, especially for us English, is that of
Puritanism. In Luther's own country Protestantism soon dwindled into a rather barren
affair: not a religion or faith, but rather now a theological jangling of
argument, the proper seat of it not the heart; the essence of it sceptical
contention: which indeed has jangled more and more, down to Voltaireism itself,
through Gustavus-Adolphus contentions onwards to French-Revolution ones! But
in our Island there arose a Puritanism, which even got itself established as a
Presbyterianism and National Church among the Scotch; which came forth as a
real business of the heart; and has produced in the world very notable fruit.
In some senses, one may say it is the only phasis of Protestantism that ever
got to the rank of being a Faith, a true heart-communication with Heaven, and
of exhibiting itself in History as such. We must spare a few words for Knox;
himself a brave and remarkable man; but still more important as Chief Priest
and Founder, which one may consider him to be, of the Faith that became
Scotland's, New England's, Oliver Cromwell's. History will have something to
say about this, for some time to come! We may censure Puritanism as we please;
and no one of us, I suppose, but would find it a very rough defective thing.
But we, and all men, may understand that it was a genuine thing; for Nature has
adopted it, and it has grown, and grows. I say sometimes, that all goes by
wager-of-battle in this world; that strength, well understood, is the measure
of all worth. Give a thing time; if it can succeed, it is a right thing. Look
now at American Saxondom; and at that little Fact of the sailing of the
Mayflower, two hundred years ago, from Delft Haven in Holland! Were we of open
sense as the Greeks were, we had found a Poem here; one of Nature's own Poems,
such as she writes in broad facts over great continents. For it was properly
the beginning of America: there were straggling settlers in America before,
some material as of a body was there; but the soul of it was first this. These
poor men, driven out of their own country, not able well to live in Holland,
determine on settling in the New World. Black untamed forests are there, and
wild savage creatures; but not so cruel as Star-chamber hangmen. They thought
the Earth would yield them food, if they tilled honestly; the everlasting
heaven would stretch, there too, overhead; they should be left in peace, to
prepare for Eternity by living well in this world of Time; worshipping in what
they thought the true, not the idolatrous way. They clubbed their small means
together; hired a ship, the little ship Mayflower, and made ready to set sail.
In Neal's History of the Puritans [Neal (London, 1755), i. 490] is an account
of the ceremony of their departure: solemnity, we might call it rather, for it
was a real act of worship. Their minister went down with them to the beach, and
their brethren whom they were to leave behind; all joined in solemn prayer,
That God would have pity on His poor children, and go with them into that waste
wilderness, for He also had made that, He was there also as well as here. Hah!
These men, I think, had a work! The weak thing, weaker than a child, becomes
strong one day, if it be a true thing. Puritanism was only despicable,
laughable then; but nobody can manage to laugh at it now. Puritanism has got
weapons and sinews; it has firearms, war-navies; it has cunning in its ten fingers,
strength in its right arm; it can steer ships, fell forests, remove mountains;
it is one of the strongest things under this sun at present! In the history of
Scotland, too, I can find properly but one epoch: we may say, it contains
nothing of world-interest at all but this Reformation by Knox. A poor barren
country, full of continual broils, dissensions, massacrings; a people in the
last state of rudeness and destitution; little better perhaps than Ireland at
this day. Hungry fierce barons, not so much as able to form any arrangement
with each other how to divide what they fleeced from these poor drudges; but
obliged, as the Colombian Republics are at this day, to make of every
alteration a revolution; no way of changing a ministry but by hanging the old
ministers on gibbets: this is a historical spectacle of no very singular
significance! "Bravery" enough, I doubt not; fierce fighting in
abundance: but not braver or fiercer than that of their old Scandinavian
Sea-king ancestors; whose exploits we have not found worth dwelling on! It is a
country as yet without a soul: nothing developed in it but what is rude,
external, semi-animal. And now at the Reformation, the internal life is
kindled, as it were, under the ribs of this outward material death. A cause,
the noblest of causes kindles itself, like a beacon set on high; high as
Heaven, yet attainable from Earth; whereby the meanest man becomes not a
Citizen only, but a Member of Christ's visible Church; a veritable Hero, if he
prove a true man! Well; this is what I mean by a whole "nation of
heroes;" a believing nation. There needs not a great soul to make a hero;
there needs a god-created soul which will be true to its origin; that will be a
great soul! The like has been seen, we find. The like will be again seen, under
wider forms than the Presbyterian: there can be no lasting good done till then.
Impossible! say some. Possible? Has it not been, in this world, as a practiced
fact? Did Hero-worship fail in Knox's case? Or are we made of other clay now? Did
the Westminster Confession of Faith add some new property to the soul of man?
God made the soul of man. He did not doom any soul of man to live as a
Hypothesis and Hearsay, in a world filled with such, and with the fatal work
and fruit of such! But to return: This that Knox did for his Nation, I say, we
may really call a resurrection as from death. It was not a smooth business; but
it was welcome surely, and cheap at that price, had it been far rougher. On the
whole, cheap at any price! as life is. The people began to live: they needed
first of all to do that, at what cost and costs soever. Scotch Literature and
Thought, Scotch Industry; James Watt, David Hume, Walter Scott, Robert Burns: I
find Knox and the Reformation acting in the heart's core of every one of these
persons and phenomena; I find that without the Reformation they would not have
been. Or what of Scotland? The Puritanism of Scotland became that of England,
of New England. A tumult in the High Church of Edinburgh spread into a
universal battle and struggle over all these realms; there came out, after
fifty years' struggling, what we all call the "Glorious Revolution" a
Habeas Corpus Act, Free Parliaments, and much else! Alas, is it not too true
what we said, That many men in the van do always, like Russian soldiers, march
into the ditch of Schweidnitz, and fill it up with their dead bodies, that the
rear may pass over them dry-shod, and gain the honor? How many earnest rugged
Cromwells, Knoxes, poor Peasant Covenanters, wrestling, battling for very life,
in rough miry places, have to struggle, and suffer, and fall, greatly censured,
bemired, before a beautiful Revolution of Eighty-eight can step over them in
official pumps and silk-stockings, with universal three-times-three! It seems
to me hard measure that this Scottish man, now after three hundred years,
should have to plead like a culprit before the world; intrinsically for having
been, in such way as it was then possible to be, the bravest of all Scotchmen!
Had he been a poor Half-and-half, he could have crouched into the corner, like
so many others; Scotland had not been delivered; and Knox had been without
blame. He is the one Scotchman to whom, of all others, his country and the
world owe a debt. He has to plead that Scotland would forgive him for having
been worth to it any million "unblamable" Scotchmen that need no
forgiveness! He bared his breast to the battle; had to row in French galleys,
wander forlorn in exile, in clouds and storms; was censured, shot at through his
windows; had a right sore fighting life: if this world were his place of
recompense, he had made but a bad venture of it. I cannot apologize for Knox.
To him it is very indifferent, these two hundred and fifty years or more, what
men say of him. But we, having got above all those details of his battle, and
living now in clearness on the fruits of his victory, we, for our own sake,
ought to look through the rumors and controversies enveloping the man, into the
man himself. For one thing, I will remark that this post of Prophet to his
Nation was not of his seeking; Knox had lived forty years quietly obscure,
before he became conspicuous. He was the son of poor parents; had got a college
education; become a Priest; adopted the Reformation, and seemed well content to
guide his own steps by the light of it, nowise unduly intruding it on others.
He had lived as Tutor in gentlemen's families; preaching when any body of
persons wished to hear his doctrine: resolute he to walk by the truth, and
speak the truth when called to do it; not ambitious of more; not fancying
himself capable of more. In this entirely obscure way he had reached the age of
forty; was with the small body of Reformers who were standing siege in St.
Andrew's Castle, when one day in their chapel, the Preacher after finishing
his exhortation to these fighters in the forlorn hope, said suddenly, That
there ought to be other speakers, that all men who had a priest's heart and
gift in them ought now to speak; which gifts and heart one of their own
number, John Knox the name of him, had: Had he not? said the Preacher,
appealing to all the audience: what then is his duty? The people answered
affirmatively; it was a criminal forsaking of his post, if such a man held the
word that was in him silent. Poor Knox was obliged to stand up; he attempted to
reply; he could say no word; burst into a flood of tears, and ran out. It is
worth remembering, that scene. He was in grievous trouble for some days. He
felt what a small faculty was his for this great work. He felt what a baptism
he was called to be baptized withal. He "burst into tears." Our
primary characteristic of a Hero, that he is sincere, applies emphatically to
Knox. It is not denied anywhere that this, whatever might be his other
qualities or faults, is among the truest of men. With a singular instinct he
holds to the truth and fact; the truth alone is there for him, the rest a mere
shadow and deceptive nonentity. However feeble, forlorn the reality may seem,
on that and that only can he take his stand. In the Galleys of the River Loire,
whither Knox and the others, after their Castle of St. Andrew's was taken, had
been sent as Galley-slaves, some officer or priest, one day, presented them an
Image of the Virgin Mother, requiring that they, the blasphemous heretics,
should do it reverence. Mother? Mother of God? said Knox, when the turn came to
him: This is no Mother of God: this is "a pented bredd," a piece of
wood, I tell you, with paint on it! She is fitter for swimming, I think, than
for being worshipped, added Knox; and flung the thing into the river. It was
not very cheap jesting there: but come of it what might, this thing to Knox was
and must continue nothing other than the real truth; it was a pented bredd:
worship it he would not. He told his fellow-prisoners, in this darkest time, to
be of courage; the Cause they had was the true one, and must and would prosper;
the whole world could not put it down. Reality is of God's making; it is alone
strong. How many pented bredds, pretending to be real, are fitter to swim than
to be worshipped! This Knox cannot live but by fact: he clings to reality as
the shipwrecked sailor to the cliff. He is an instance to us how a man, by
sincerity itself, becomes heroic: it is the grand gift he has. We find in Knox
a good honest intellectual talent, no transcendent one; a narrow,
inconsiderable man, as compared with Luther: but in heartfelt instinctive
adherence to truth, in sincerity, as we say, he has no superior; nay, one might
ask, What equal he has? The heart of him is of the true Prophet cast. "He
lies there," said the Earl of Morton at his grave, "who never feared
the face of man." He resembles, more than any of the moderns, an
Old-Hebrew Prophet. The same inflexibility, intolerance, rigid narrow-looking
adherence to God's truth, stern rebuke in the name of God to all that forsake
truth: an Old-Hebrew Prophet in the guise of an Edinburgh Minister of the
Sixteenth Century. We are to take him for that; not require him to be other.
Knox's conduct to Queen Mary, the harsh visits he used to make in her own
palace, to reprove her there, have been much commented upon. Such cruelty, such
coarseness fills us with indignation. On reading the actual narrative of the
business, what Knox said, and what Knox meant, I must say one's tragic feeling
is rather disappointed. They are not so coarse, these speeches; they seem to me
about as fine as the circumstances would permit! Knox was not there to do the
courtier; he came on another errand. Whoever, reading these colloquies of his
with the Queen, thinks they are vulgar insolences of a plebeian priest to a
delicate high lady, mistakes the purport and essence of them altogether. It was
unfortunately not possible to be polite with the Queen of Scotland, unless one
proved untrue to the Nation and Cause of Scotland. A man who did not wish to
see the land of his birth made a hunting-field for intriguing ambitious Guises,
and the Cause of God trampled underfoot of Falsehoods, Formulas and the Devil's
Cause, had no method of making himself agreeable! "Better that women
weep," said Morton, "than that bearded men be forced to weep."
Knox was the constitutional opposition-party in Scotland: the Nobles of the
country, called by their station to take that post, were not found in it; Knox
had to go, or no one. The hapless Queen; but the still more hapless Country,
if she were made happy! Mary herself was not without sharpness enough, among
her other qualities: "Who are you," said she once, "that presume
to school the nobles and sovereign of this realm?" "Madam, a subject
born within the same," answered he. Reasonably answered! If the
"subject" have truth to speak, it is not the "subject's"
footing that will fail him here. We blame Knox for his intolerance. Well,
surely it is good that each of us be as tolerant as possible. Yet, at bottom,
after all the talk there is and has been about it, what is tolerance? Tolerance
has to tolerate the unessential; and to see well what that is. Tolerance has to
be noble, measured, just in its very wrath, when it can tolerate no longer.
But, on the whole, we are not altogether here to tolerate! We are here to
resist, to control and vanquish withal. We do not "tolerate"
Falsehoods, Thieveries, Iniquities, when they fasten on us; we say to them,
Thou art false, thou art not tolerable! We are here to extinguish Falsehoods,
and put an end to them, in some wise way! I will not quarrel so much with the
way; the doing of the thing is our great concern. In this sense Knox was, full
surely, intolerant. A man sent to row in French Galleys, and such like, for
teaching the Truth in his own land, cannot always be in the mildest humor! I am
not prepared to say that Knox had a soft temper; nor do I know that he had what
we call an ill temper. An ill nature he decidedly had not. Kind honest affections
dwelt in the much-enduring, hard-worn, ever-battling man. That he could rebuke
Queens, and had such weight among those proud turbulent Nobles, proud enough
whatever else they were; and could maintain to the end a kind of virtual
Presidency and Sovereignty in that wild realm, he who was only "a subject
born within the same:" this of itself will prove to us that he was found,
close at hand, to be no mean acrid man; but at heart a healthful, strong,
sagacious man. Such alone can bear rule in that kind. They blame him for
pulling down cathedrals, and so forth, as if he were a seditious rioting
demagogue: precisely the reverse is seen to be the fact, in regard to
cathedrals and the rest of it, if we examine! Knox wanted no pulling down of
stone edifices; he wanted leprosy and darkness to be thrown out of the lives of
men. Tumult was not his element; it was the tragic feature of his life that he
was forced to dwell so much in that. Every such man is the born enemy of
Disorder; hates to be in it: but what then? Smooth Falsehood is not Order; it
is the general sum-total of Disorder. Order is Truth, each thing standing on
the basis that belongs to it: Order and Falsehood cannot subsist together.
Withal, unexpectedly enough, this Knox has a vein of drollery in him; which I
like much, in combination with his other qualities. He has a true eye for the
ridiculous. His History, with its rough earnestness, is curiously enlivened
with this. When the two Prelates, entering Glasgow Cathedral, quarrel about
precedence; march rapidly up, take to hustling one another, twitching one
another's rochets, and at last flourishing their crosiers like quarter-staves,
it is a great sight for him every way! Not mockery, scorn, bitterness alone;
though there is enough of that too. But a true, loving, illuminating laugh
mounts up over the earnest visage; not a loud laugh; you would say, a laugh in
the eyes most of all. An honest-hearted, brotherly man; brother to the high,
brother also to the low; sincere in his sympathy with both. He had his pipe of
Bourdeaux too, we find, in that old Edinburgh house of his; a cheery social
man, with faces that loved him! They go far wrong who think this Knox was a
gloomy, spasmodic, shrieking fanatic. Not at all: he is one of the solidest of
men. Practical, cautious-hopeful, patient; a most shrewd, observing, quietly
discerning man. In fact, he has very much the type of character we assign to
the Scotch at present: a certain sardonic taciturnity is in him; insight
enough; and a stouter heart than he himself knows of. He has the power of
holding his peace over many things which do not vitally concern him,
"They? what are they?" But the thing which does vitally concern him,
that thing he will speak of; and in a tone the whole world shall be made to
hear: all the more emphatic for his long silence. This Prophet of the Scotch is
to me no hateful man! He had a sore fight of an existence; wrestling with
Popes and Principalities; in defeat, contention, life-long struggle; rowing as
a galley-slave, wandering as an exile. A sore fight: but he won it. "Have
you hope?" they asked him in his last moment, when he could no longer
speak. He lifted his finger, "pointed upwards with his finger," and
so died. Honor to him! His works have not died. The letter of his work dies, as
of all men's; but the spirit of it never. One word more as to the letter of
Knox's work. The unforgivable offence in him is, that he wished to set up
Priests over the head of Kings. In other words, he strove to make the
Government of Scotland a Theocracy. This indeed is properly the sum of his
offences, the essential sin; for which what pardon can there be? It is most
true, he did, at bottom, consciously or unconsciously, mean a Theocracy, or
Government of God. He did mean that Kings and Prime Ministers, and all manner
of persons, in public or private, diplomatizing or whatever else they might be
doing, should walk according to the Gospel of Christ, and understand that this
was their Law, supreme over all laws. He hoped once to see such a thing realized;
and the Petition, Thy Kingdom come, no longer an empty word. He was sore
grieved when he saw greedy worldly Barons clutch hold of the Church's property;
when he expostulated that it was not secular property, that it was spiritual
property, and should be turned to true churchly uses, education, schools,
worship; and the Regent Murray had to answer, with a shrug of the shoulders,
"It is a devout imagination!" This was Knox's scheme of right and
truth; this he zealously endeavored after, to realize it. If we think his
scheme of truth was too narrow, was not true, we may rejoice that he could not
realize it; that it remained after two centuries of effort, unrealizable, and
is a "devout imagination" still. But how shall we blame him for
struggling to realize it? Theocracy, Government of God, is precisely the thing
to be struggled for! All Prophets, zealous Priests, are there for that purpose.
Hildebrand wished a Theocracy; Cromwell wished it, fought for it; Mahomet
attained it. Nay, is it not what all zealous men, whether called Priests,
Prophets, or whatsoever else called, do essentially wish, and must wish? That
right and truth, or God's Law, reign supreme among men, this is the Heavenly
Ideal (well named in Knox's time, and namable in all times, a revealed
"Will of God") towards which the Reformer will insist that all be
more and more approximated. All true Reformers, as I said, are by the nature of
them Priests, and strive for a Theocracy. How far such Ideals can ever be
introduced into Practice, and at what point our impatience with their
non-introduction ought to begin, is always a question. I think we may say
safely, Let them introduce themselves as far as they can contrive to do it! If
they are the true faith of men, all men ought to be more or less impatient
always where they are not found introduced. There will never be wanting Regent
Murrays enough to shrug their shoulders, and say, "A devout
imagination!" We will praise the Hero-priest rather, who does what is in
him to bring them in; and wears out, in toil, calumny, contradiction, a noble
life, to make a God's Kingdom of this Earth. The Earth will not become too
godlike!
May 19, 1840.] Lecture V. The Hero As Man Of Letters. Johnson, Rousseau, Burns.
Hero-Gods, Prophets, Poets, Priests are forms of
Heroism that belong to the old ages, make their appearance in the remotest
times; some of them have ceased to be possible long since, and cannot any more
show themselves in this world. The Hero as Man of Letters, again, of which
class we are to speak to-day, is altogether a product of these new ages; and so
long as the wondrous art of Writing, or of Ready-writing which we call Printing,
subsists, he may be expected to continue, as one of the main forms of Heroism
for all future ages. He is, in various respects, a very singular phenomenon. He
is new, I say; he has hardly lasted above a century in the world yet. Never,
till about a hundred years ago, was there seen any figure of a Great Soul
living apart in that anomalous manner; endeavoring to speak forth the
inspiration that was in him by Printed Books, and find place and subsistence by
what the world would please to give him for doing that. Much had been sold and
bought, and left to make its own bargain in the market-place; but the inspired
wisdom of a Heroic Soul never till then, in that naked manner. He, with his
copy-rights and copy-wrongs, in his squalid garret, in his rusty coat; ruling
(for this is what he does), from his grave, after death, whole nations and
generations who would, or would not, give him bread while living, is a rather
curious spectacle! Few shapes of Heroism can be more unexpected. Alas, the Hero
from of old has had to cramp himself into strange shapes: the world knows not
well at any time what to do with him, so foreign is his aspect in the world! It
seemed absurd to us, that men, in their rude admiration, should take some wise
great Odin for a god, and worship him as such; some wise great Mahomet for one
god-inspired, and religiously follow his Law for twelve centuries: but that a
wise great Johnson, a Burns, a Rousseau, should be taken for some idle
nondescript, extant in the world to amuse idleness, and have a few coins and
applauses thrown him, that he might live thereby; this perhaps, as before
hinted, will one day seem a still absurder phasis of things! Meanwhile, since
it is the spiritual always that determines the material, this same
Man-of-Letters Hero must be regarded as our most important modern person. He,
such as he may be, is the soul of all. What he teaches, the whole world will do
and make. The world's manner of dealing with him is the most significant
feature of the world's general position. Looking well at his life, we may get a
glance, as deep as is readily possible for us, into the life of those singular
centuries which have produced him, in which we ourselves live and work. There
are genuine Men of Letters, and not genuine; as in every kind there is a
genuine and a spurious. If hero be taken to mean genuine, then I say the Hero
as Man of Letters will be found discharging a function for us which is ever
honorable, ever the highest; and was once well known to be the highest. He is
uttering forth, in such way as he has, the inspired soul of him; all that a
man, in any case, can do. I say inspired; for what we call
"originality," "sincerity," "genius," the heroic
quality we have no good name for, signifies that. The Hero is he who lives in
the inward sphere of things, in the True, Divine and Eternal, which exists
always, unseen to most, under the Temporary, Trivial: his being is in that; he
declares that abroad, by act or speech as it may be in declaring himself
abroad. His life, as we said before, is a piece of the everlasting heart of
Nature herself: all men's life is, but the weak many know not the fact, and
are untrue to it, in most times; the strong few are strong, heroic, perennial,
because it cannot be hidden from them. The Man of Letters, like every Hero, is
there to proclaim this in such sort as he can. Intrinsically it is the same
function which the old generations named a man Prophet, Priest, Divinity for
doing; which all manner of Heroes, by speech or by act, are sent into the world
to do. Fichte the German Philosopher delivered, some forty years ago at
Erlangen, a highly remarkable Course of Lectures on this subject: "Ueber
das Wesen des Gelehrten, On the Nature of the Literary Man." Fichte, in
conformity with the Transcendental Philosophy, of which he was a distinguished
teacher, declares first: That all things which we see or work with in this
Earth, especially we ourselves and all persons, are as a kind of vesture or
sensuous Appearance: that under all there lies, as the essence of them, what he
calls the "Divine Idea of the World;" this is the Reality which
"lies at the bottom of all Appearance." To the mass of men no such
Divine Idea is recognizable in the world; they live merely, says Fichte, among
the superficialities, practicalities and shows of the world, not dreaming that
there is anything divine under them. But the Man of Letters is sent hither
specially that he may discern for himself, and make manifest to us, this same
Divine Idea: in every new generation it will manifest itself in a new dialect;
and he is there for the purpose of doing that. Such is Fichte's phraseology;
with which we need not quarrel. It is his way of naming what I here, by other
words, am striving imperfectly to name; what there is at present no name for:
The unspeakable Divine Significance, full of splendor, of wonder and terror,
that lies in the being of every man, of every thing, the Presence of the God
who made every man and thing. Mahomet taught this in his dialect; Odin in his:
it is the thing which all thinking hearts, in one dialect or another, are here
to teach. Fichte calls the Man of Letters, therefore, a Prophet, or as he
prefers to phrase it, a Priest, continually unfolding the Godlike to men: Men
of Letters are a perpetual Priesthood, from age to age, teaching all men that a
God is still present in their life, that all "Appearance," whatsoever
we see in the world, is but as a vesture for the "Divine Idea of the
World," for "that which lies at the bottom of Appearance." In
the true Literary Man there is thus ever, acknowledged or not by the world, a
sacredness: he is the light of the world; the world's Priest; guiding it,
like a sacred Pillar of Fire, in its dark pilgrimage through the waste of Time.
Fichte discriminates with sharp zeal the true Literary Man, what we here call
the Hero as Man of Letters, from multitudes of false unheroic. Whoever lives
not wholly in this Divine Idea, or living partially in it, struggles not, as
for the one good, to live wholly in it, he is, let him live where else he
like, in what pomps and prosperities he like, no Literary Man; he is, says
Fichte, a "Bungler, Stumper." Or at best, if he belong to the prosaic
provinces, he may be a "Hodman; " Fichte even calls him elsewhere a
"Nonentity," and has in short no mercy for him, no wish that he
should continue happy among us! This is Fichte's notion of the Man of Letters.
It means, in its own form, precisely what we here mean. In this point of view,
I consider that, for the last hundred years, by far the notablest of all Literary
Men is Fichte's countryman, Goethe. To that man too, in a strange way, there
was given what we may call a life in the Divine Idea of the World; vision of
the inward divine mystery: and strangely, out of his Books, the world rises
imaged once more as godlike, the workmanship and temple of a God. Illuminated
all, not in fierce impure fire-splendor as of Mahomet, but in mild celestial
radiance; really a Prophecy in these most unprophetic times; to my mind, by
far the greatest, though one of the quietest, among all the great things that
have come to pass in them. Our chosen specimen of the Hero as Literary Man
would be this Goethe. And it were a very pleasant plan for me here to discourse
of his heroism: for I consider him to be a true Hero; heroic in what he said
and did, and perhaps still more in what he did not say and did not do; to me a
noble spectacle: a great heroic ancient man, speaking and keeping silence as an
ancient Hero, in the guise of a most modern, high-bred, high-cultivated Man of
Letters! We have had no such spectacle; no man capable of affording such, for
the last hundred and fifty years. But at present, such is the general state of
knowledge about Goethe, it were worse than useless to attempt speaking of him
in this case. Speak as I might, Goethe, to the great majority of you, would
remain problematic, vague; no impression but a false one could be realized. Him
we must leave to future times. Johnson, Burns, Rousseau, three great figures
from a prior time, from a far inferior state of circumstances, will suit us
better here. Three men of the Eighteenth Century; the conditions of their life
far more resemble what those of ours still are in England, than what Goethe's
in Germany were. Alas, these men did not conquer like him; they fought bravely,
and fell. They were not heroic bringers of the light, but heroic seekers of it.
They lived under galling conditions; struggling as under mountains of
impediment, and could not unfold themselves into clearness, or victorious
interpretation of that "Divine Idea." It is rather the Tombs of three
Literary Heroes that I have to show you. There are the monumental heaps, under
which three spiritual giants lie buried. Very mournful, but also great and full
of interest for us. We will linger by them for a while.
Complaint is often made, in these times, of what we
call the disorganized condition of society: how ill many forces of society
fulfil their work; how many powerful are seen working in a wasteful, chaotic,
altogether unarranged manner. It is too just a complaint, as we all know. But
perhaps if we look at this of Books and the Writers of Books, we shall find
here, as it were, the summary of all other disorganizations; a sort of heart,
from which, and to which all other confusion circulates in the world!
Considering what Book writers do in the world, and what the world does with
Book writers, I should say, It is the most anomalous thing the world at present
has to show. We should get into a sea far beyond sounding, did we attempt to
give account of this: but we must glance at it for the sake of our subject. The
worst element in the life of these three Literary Heroes was, that they found
their business and position such a chaos. On the beaten road there is tolerable
travelling; but it is sore work, and many have to perish, fashioning a path
through the impassable! Our pious Fathers, feeling well what importance lay in
the speaking of man to men, founded churches, made endowments, regulations;
everywhere in the civilized world there is a Pulpit, environed with all manner
of complex dignified appurtenances and furtherances, that therefrom a man with
the tongue may, to best advantage, address his fellow-men. They felt that this
was the most important thing; that without this there was no good thing. It is
a right pious work, that of theirs; beautiful to behold! But now with the art
of Writing, with the art of Printing, a total change has come over that
business. The Writer of a Book, is not he a Preacher preaching not to this
parish or that, on this day or that, but to all men in all times and places?
Surely it is of the last importance that he do his work right, whoever do it
wrong; that the eye report not falsely, for then all the other members are
astray! Well; how he may do his work, whether he do it right or wrong, or do it
at all, is a point which no man in the world has taken the pains to think of.
To a certain shopkeeper, trying to get some money for his books, if lucky, he
is of some importance; to no other man of any. Whence he came, whither he is bound,
by what ways he arrived, by what he might be furthered on his course, no one
asks. He is an accident in society. He wanders like a wild Ishmaelite, in a
world of which he is as the spiritual light, either the guidance or the
misguidance! Certainly the Art of Writing is the most miraculous of all things
man has devised. Odin's Runes were the first form of the work of a Hero; Books
written words, are still miraculous Runes, the latest form! In Books lies the
soul of the whole Past Time; the articulate audible voice of the Past, when the
body and material substance of it has altogether vanished like a dream. Mighty
fleets and armies, harbors and arsenals, vast cities, high-domed, many-engined,
they are precious, great: but what do they become? Agamemnon, the many
Agamemnons, Pericleses, and their Greece; all is gone now to some ruined
fragments, dumb mournful wrecks and blocks: but the Books of Greece! There
Greece, to every thinker, still very literally lives: can be called up again
into life. No magic Rune is stranger than a Book. All that Mankind has done,
thought, gained or been: it is lying as in magic preservation in the pages of
Books. They are the chosen possession of men. Do not Books still accomplish
miracles, as Runes were fabled to do? They persuade men. Not the wretchedest
circulating-library novel, which foolish girls thumb and con in remote
villages, but will help to regulate the actual practical weddings and
households of those foolish girls. So "Celia" felt, so "Clifford"
acted: the foolish Theorem of Life, stamped into those young brains, comes out
as a solid Practice one day. Consider whether any Rune in the wildest
imagination of Mythologist ever did such wonders as, on the actual firm Earth,
some Books have done! What built St. Paul's Cathedral? Look at the heart of the
matter, it was that divine Hebrew BOOK, the word partly of the man Moses, an
outlaw tending his Midianitish herds, four thousand years ago, in the
wildernesses of Sinai! It is the strangest of things, yet nothing is truer.
With the art of Writing, of which Printing is a simple, an inevitable and
comparatively insignificant corollary, the true reign of miracles for mankind
commenced. It related, with a wondrous new contiguity and perpetual closeness,
the Past and Distant with the Present in time and place; all times and all
places with this our actual Here and Now. All things were altered for men; all
modes of important work of men: teaching, preaching, governing, and all else.
To look at Teaching, for instance. Universities are a notable, respectable
product of the modern ages. Their existence too is modified, to the very basis
of it, by the existence of Books. Universities arose while there were yet no
Books procurable; while a man, for a single Book, had to give an estate of
land. That, in those circumstances, when a man had some knowledge to
communicate, he should do it by gathering the learners round him, face to face,
was a necessity for him. If you wanted to know what Abelard knew, you must go
and listen to Abelard. Thousands, as many as thirty thousand, went to hear
Abelard and that metaphysical theology of his. And now for any other teacher
who had also something of his own to teach, there was a great convenience
opened: so many thousands eager to learn were already assembled yonder; of all
places the best place for him was that. For any third teacher it was better
still; and grew ever the better, the more teachers there came. It only needed
now that the King took notice of this new phenomenon; combined or agglomerated
the various schools into one school; gave it edifices, privileges,
encouragements, and named it Universitas, or School of all Sciences: the
University of Paris, in its essential characters, was there. The model of all
subsequent Universities; which down even to these days, for six centuries now,
have gone on to found themselves. Such, I conceive, was the origin of
Universities. It is clear, however, that with this simple circumstance,
facility of getting Books, the whole conditions of the business from top to
bottom were changed. Once invent Printing, you metamorphosed all Universities,
or superseded them! The Teacher needed not now to gather men personally round
him, that he might speak to them what he knew: print it in a Book, and all
learners far and wide, for a trifle, had it each at his own fireside, much more
effectually to learn it! Doubtless there is still peculiar virtue in Speech;
even writers of Books may still, in some circumstances, find it convenient to
speak also, witness our present meeting here! There is, one would say, and
must ever remain while man has a tongue, a distinct province for Speech as well
as for Writing and Printing. In regard to all things this must remain; to
Universities among others. But the limits of the two have nowhere yet been
pointed out, ascertained; much less put in practice: the University which would
completely take in that great new fact, of the existence of Printed Books, and
stand on a clear footing for the Nineteenth Century as the Paris one did for
the Thirteenth, has not yet come into existence. If we think of it, all that a
University, or final highest School can do for us, is still but what the first
School began doing, teach us to read. We learn to read, in various languages,
in various sciences; we learn the alphabet and letters of all manner of Books.
But the place where we are to get knowledge, even theoretic knowledge, is the
Books themselves! It depends on what we read, after all manner of Professors
have done their best for us. The true University of these days is a Collection
of Books. But to the Church itself, as I hinted already, all is changed, in its
preaching, in its working, by the introduction of Books. The Church is the
working recognized Union of our Priests or Prophets, of those who by wise
teaching guide the souls of men. While there was no Writing, even while there
was no Easy-writing, or Printing, the preaching of the voice was the natural
sole method of performing this. But now with Books! He that can write a true
Book, to persuade England, is not he the Bishop and Archbishop, the Primate of
England and of All England? I many a time say, the writers of Newspapers,
Pamphlets, Poems, Books, these are the real working effective Church of a
modern country. Nay not only our preaching, but even our worship, is not it too
accomplished by means of Printed Books? The noble sentiment which a gifted soul
has clothed for us in melodious words, which brings melody into our hearts,
is not this essentially, if we will understand it, of the nature of worship?
There are many, in all countries, who, in this confused time, have no other
method of worship. He who, in any way, shows us better than we knew before that
a lily of the fields is beautiful, does he not show it us as an effluence of
the Fountain of all Beauty; as the handwriting, made visible there, of the
great Maker of the Universe? He has sung for us, made us sing with him, a
little verse of a sacred Psalm. Essentially so. How much more he who sings, who
says, or in any way brings home to our heart the noble doings, feelings,
darings and endurances of a brother man! He has verily touched our hearts as
with a live coal from the altar. Perhaps there is no worship more authentic.
Literature, so far as it is Literature, is an "apocalypse of Nature,"
a revealing of the "open secret." It may well enough be named, in
Fichte's style, a "continuous revelation" of the Godlike in the
Terrestrial and Common. The Godlike does ever, in very truth, endure there; is
brought out, now in this dialect, now in that, with various degrees of
clearness: all true gifted Singers and Speakers are, consciously or
unconsciously, doing so. The dark stormful indignation of a Byron, so wayward
and perverse, may have touches of it; nay the withered mockery of a French
sceptic, his mockery of the False, a love and worship of the True. How much
more the sphere-harmony of a Shakspeare, of a Goethe; the cathedral music of a
Milton! They are something too, those humble genuine lark-notes of a Burns,
skylark, starting from the humble furrow, far overhead into the blue depths,
and singing to us so genuinely there! For all true singing is of the nature of
worship; as indeed all true working may be said to be, whereof such singing
is but the record, and fit melodious representation, to us. Fragments of a real
"Church Liturgy" and "Body of Homilies," strangely
disguised from the common eye, are to be found weltering in that huge
froth-ocean of Printed Speech we loosely call Literature! Books are our Church
too. Or turning now to the Government of men. Witenagemote, old Parliament, was
a great thing. The affairs of the nation were there deliberated and decided;
what we were to do as a nation. But does not, though the name Parliament
subsists, the parliamentary debate go on now, everywhere and at all times, in a
far more comprehensive way, out of Parliament altogether? Burke said there were
Three Estates in Parliament; but, in the Reporters' Gallery yonder, there sat a
Fourth Estate more important far than they all. It is not a figure of speech,
or a witty saying; it is a literal fact, very momentous to us in these times.
Literature is our Parliament too. Printing, which comes necessarily out of
Writing, I say often, is equivalent to Democracy: invent Writing, Democracy is
inevitable. Writing brings Printing; brings universal everyday extempore
Printing, as we see at present. Whoever can speak, speaking now to the whole
nation, becomes a power, a branch of government, with inalienable weight in
law-making, in all acts of authority. It matters not what rank he has, what
revenues or garnitures. the requisite thing is, that he have a tongue which
others will listen to; this and nothing more is requisite. The nation is
governed by all that has tongue in the nation: Democracy is virtually there.
Add only, that whatsoever power exists will have itself, by and by, organized;
working secretly under bandages, obscurations, obstructions, it will never rest
till it get to work free, unencumbered, visible to all. Democracy virtually
extant will insist on becoming palpably extant. On all sides, are we not
driven to the conclusion that, of the things which man can do or make here
below, by far the most momentous, wonderful and worthy are the things we call
Books! Those poor bits of rag-paper with black ink on them; from the Daily
Newspaper to the sacred Hebrew BOOK, what have they not done, what are they not
doing! For indeed, whatever be the outward form of the thing (bits of paper,
as we say, and black ink), is it not verily, at bottom, the highest act of
man's faculty that produces a Book? It is the Thought of man; the true
thaumaturgic virtue; by which man works all things whatsoever. All that he
does, and brings to pass, is the vesture of a Thought. This London City, with
all its houses, palaces, steam-engines, cathedrals, and huge immeasurable
traffic and tumult, what is it but a Thought, but millions of Thoughts made
into One; a huge immeasurable Spirit of a THOUGHT, embodied in brick, in
iron, smoke, dust, Palaces, Parliaments, Hackney Coaches, Katherine Docks, and
the rest of it! Not a brick was made but some man had to think of the making of
that brick. The thing we called "bits of paper with traces of black
ink," is the purest embodiment a Thought of man can have. No wonder it is,
in all ways, the activest and noblest. All this, of the importance and supreme
importance of the Man of Letters in modern Society, and how the Press is to
such a degree superseding the Pulpit, the Senate, the Senatus Academicus and
much else, has been admitted for a good while; and recognized often enough, in
late times, with a sort of sentimental triumph and wonderment. It seems to me,
the Sentimental by and by will have to give place to the Practical. If Men of
Letters are so incalculably influential, actually performing such work for us
from age to age, and even from day to day, then I think we may conclude that
Men of Letters will not always wander like unrecognized unregulated Ishmaelites
among us! Whatsoever thing, as I said above, has virtual unnoticed power will
cast off its wrappages, bandages, and step forth one day with palpably
articulated, universally visible power. That one man wear the clothes, and take
the wages, of a function which is done by quite another: there can be no profit
in this; this is not right, it is wrong. And yet, alas, the making of it right,
what a business, for long times to come! Sure enough, this that we call
Organization of the Literary Guild is still a great way off, encumbered with
all manner of complexities. If you asked me what were the best possible
organization for the Men of Letters in modern society; the arrangement of
furtherance and regulation, grounded the most accurately on the actual facts of
their position and of the world's position, I should beg to say that the
problem far exceeded my faculty! It is not one man's faculty; it is that of
many successive men turned earnestly upon it, that will bring out even an
approximate solution. What the best arrangement were, none of us could say. But
if you ask, Which is the worst? I answer: This which we now have, that Chaos
should sit umpire in it; this is the worst. To the best, or any good one, there
is yet a long way. One remark I must not omit, That royal or parliamentary
grants of money are by no means the chief thing wanted! To give our Men of
Letters stipends, endowments and all furtherance of cash, will do little
towards the business. On the whole, one is weary of hearing about the
omnipotence of money. I will say rather that, for a genuine man, it is no evil
to be poor; that there ought to be Literary Men poor, to show whether they
are genuine or not! Mendicant Orders, bodies of good men doomed to beg, were
instituted in the Christian Church; a most natural and even necessary
development of the spirit of Christianity. It was itself founded on Poverty, on
Sorrow, Contradiction, Crucifixion, every species of worldly Distress and
Degradation. We may say, that he who has not known those things, and learned
from them the priceless lessons they have to teach, has missed a good
opportunity of schooling. To beg, and go barefoot, in coarse woollen cloak with
a rope round your loins, and be despised of all the world, was no beautiful
business; nor an honorable one in any eye, till the nobleness of those who
did so had made it honored of some! Begging is not in our course at the present
time: but for the rest of it, who will say that a Johnson is not perhaps the
better for being poor? It is needful for him, at all rates, to know that
outward profit, that success of any kind is not the goal he has to aim at.
Pride, vanity, ill-conditioned egoism of all sorts, are bred in his heart, as
in every heart; need, above all, to be cast out of his heart, to be, with
whatever pangs, torn out of it, cast forth from it, as a thing worthless.
Byron, born rich and noble, made out even less than Burns, poor and plebeian.
Who knows but, in that same "best possible organization" as yet far
off, Poverty may still enter as an important element? What if our Men of
Letters, men setting up to be Spiritual Heroes, were still then, as they now
are, a kind of "involuntary monastic order;" bound still to this same
ugly Poverty, till they had tried what was in it too, till they had learned
to make it too do for them! Money, in truth, can do much, but it cannot do all.
We must know the province of it, and confine it there; and even spurn it back,
when it wishes to get farther. Besides, were the money-furtherances, the proper
season for them, the fit assigner of them, all settled, how is the Burns to be
recognized that merits these? He must pass through the ordeal, and prove
himself. This ordeal; this wild welter of a chaos which is called Literary
Life: this too is a kind of ordeal! There is clear truth in the idea that a
struggle from the lower classes of society, towards the upper regions and
rewards of society, must ever continue. Strong men are born there, who ought to
stand elsewhere than there. The manifold, inextricably complex, universal
struggle of these constitutes, and must constitute, what is called the progress
of society. For Men of Letters, as for all other sorts of men. How to regulate
that struggle? There is the whole question. To leave it as it is, at the mercy
of blind Chance; a whirl of distracted atoms, one cancelling the other; one of
the thousand arriving saved, nine hundred and ninety-nine lost by the way; your
royal Johnson languishing inactive in garrets, or harnessed to the yoke of
Printer Cave; your Burns dying broken-hearted as a Gauger; your Rousseau driven
into mad exasperation, kindling French Revolutions by his paradoxes: this, as
we said, is clearly enough the worst regulation. The best, alas, is far from
us! And yet there can be no doubt but it is coming; advancing on us, as yet
hidden in the bosom of centuries: this is a prophecy one can risk. For so soon
as men get to discern the importance of a thing, they do infallibly set about
arranging it, facilitating, forwarding it; and rest not till, in some
approximate degree, they have accomplished that. I say, of all Priesthoods,
Aristocracies, Governing Classes at present extant in the world, there is no
class comparable for importance to that Priesthood of the Writers of Books.
This is a fact which he who runs may read, and draw inferences from.
"Literature will take care of itself," answered Mr. Pitt, when
applied to for some help for Burns. "Yes," adds Mr. Southey, "it
will take care of itself; and of you too, if you do not look to it!" The
result to individual Men of Letters is not the momentous one; they are but
individuals, an infinitesimal fraction of the great body; they can struggle on,
and live or else die, as they have been wont. But it deeply concerns the whole
society, whether it will set its light on high places, to walk thereby; or
trample it under foot, and scatter it in all ways of wild waste (not without
conflagration), as heretofore! Light is the one thing wanted for the world. Put
wisdom in the head of the world, the world will fight its battle victoriously,
and be the best world man can make it. I called this anomaly of a disorganic
Literary Class the heart of all other anomalies, at once product and parent;
some good arrangement for that would be as the punctum saliens of a new
vitality and just arrangement for all. Already, in some European countries, in France,
in Prussia, one traces some beginnings of an arrangement for the Literary
Class; indicating the gradual possibility of such. I believe that it is
possible; that it will have to be possible. By far the most interesting fact I
hear about the Chinese is one on which we cannot arrive at clearness, but which
excites endless curiosity even in the dim state: this namely, that they do
attempt to make their Men of Letters their Governors! It would be rash to say,
one understood how this was done, or with what degree of success it was done.
All such things must be very unsuccessful; yet a small degree of success is
precious; the very attempt how precious! There does seem to be, all over China,
a more or less active search everywhere to discover the men of talent that grow
up in the young generation. Schools there are for every one: a foolish sort of
training, yet still a sort. The youths who distinguish themselves in the lower
school are promoted into favorable stations in the higher, that they may still
more distinguish themselves, forward and forward: it appears to be out of
these that the Official Persons, and incipient Governors, are taken. These are
they whom they try first, whether they can govern or not. And surely with the
best hope: for they are the men that have already shown intellect. Try them:
they have not governed or administered as yet; perhaps they cannot; but there
is no doubt they have some Understanding, without which no man can! Neither
is Understanding a tool, as we are too apt to figure; "it is a hand which
can handle any tool." Try these men: they are of all others the best worth
trying. Surely there is no kind of government, constitution, revolution,
social apparatus or arrangement, that I know of in this world, so promising to
one's scientific curiosity as this. The man of intellect at the top of affairs:
this is the aim of all constitutions and revolutions, if they have any aim. For
the man of true intellect, as I assert and believe always, is the noble-hearted
man withal, the true, just, humane and valiant man. Get him for governor, all
is got; fail to get him, though you had Constitutions plentiful as
blackberries, and a Parliament in every village, there is nothing yet got!
These things look strange, truly; and are not such as we commonly speculate
upon. But we are fallen into strange times; these things will require to be
speculated upon; to be rendered practicable, to be in some way put in practice.
These, and many others. On all hands of us, there is the announcement, audible enough,
that the old Empire of Routine has ended; that to say a thing has long been, is
no reason for its continuing to be. The things which have been are fallen into
decay, are fallen into incompetence; large masses of mankind, in every society
of our Europe, are no longer capable of living at all by the things which have
been. When millions of men can no longer by their utmost exertion gain food for
themselves, and "the third man for thirty-six weeks each year is short of
third-rate potatoes," the things which have been must decidedly prepare to
alter themselves! I will now quit this of the organization of Men of Letters.
Alas, the evil that pressed heaviest on those Literary
Heroes of ours was not the want of organization for Men of Letters, but a far
deeper one; out of which, indeed, this and so many other evils for the Literary
Man, and for all men, had, as from their fountain, taken rise. That our Hero as
Man of Letters had to travel without highway, companionless, through an
inorganic chaos, and to leave his own life and faculty lying there, as a
partial contribution towards pushing some highway through it: this, had not his
faculty itself been so perverted and paralyzed, he might have put up with,
might have considered to be but the common lot of Heroes. His fatal misery was
the spiritual paralysis, so we may name it, of the Age in which his life lay;
whereby his life too, do what he might, was half paralyzed! The Eighteenth was
a Sceptical Century; in which little word there is a whole Pandora's Box of
miseries. Scepticism means not intellectual Doubt alone, but moral Doubt; all
sorts of infidelity, insincerity, spiritual paralysis. Perhaps, in few
centuries that one could specify since the world began, was a life of Heroism
more difficult for a man. That was not an age of Faith, an age of Heroes! The
very possibility of Heroism had been, as it were, formally abnegated in the
minds of all. Heroism was gone forever; Triviality, Formulism and Commonplace
were come forever. The "age of miracles" had been, or perhaps had not
been; but it was not any longer. An effete world; wherein Wonder, Greatness,
Godhood could not now dwell; in one word, a godless world! How mean, dwarfish
are their ways of thinking, in this time, compared not with the Christian Shakspeares
and Miltons, but with the old Pagan Skalds, with any species of believing men!
The living TREE Igdrasil, with the melodious prophetic waving of its world-wide
boughs, deep-rooted as Hela, has died out into the clanking of a World-MACHINE.
"Tree" and "Machine:" contrast these two things. I, for my
share, declare the world to be no machine! I say that it does not go by
wheel-and-pinion "motives" self-interests, checks, balances; that
there is something far other in it than the clank of spinning-jennies, and
parliamentary majorities; and, on the whole, that it is not a machine at all!
The old Norse Heathen had a truer motion of God's-world than these poor
Machine-Sceptics: the old Heathen Norse were sincere men. But for these poor
Sceptics there was no sincerity, no truth. Half-truth and hearsay was called
truth. Truth, for most men, meant plausibility; to be measured by the number of
votes you could get. They had lost any notion that sincerity was possible, or
of what sincerity was. How many Plausibilities asking, with unaffected surprise
and the air of offended virtue, What! am not I sincere? Spiritual Paralysis, I
say, nothing left but a Mechanical life, was the characteristic of that
century. For the common man, unless happily he stood below his century and
belonged to another prior one, it was impossible to be a Believer, a Hero; he
lay buried, unconscious, under these baleful influences. To the strongest man,
only with infinite struggle and confusion was it possible to work himself half
loose; and lead as it were, in an enchanted, most tragical way, a spiritual
death-in-life, and be a Half-Hero! Scepticism is the name we give to all this;
as the chief symptom, as the chief origin of all this. Concerning which so much
were to be said! It would take many Discourses, not a small fraction of one
Discourse, to state what one feels about that Eighteenth Century and its ways.
As indeed this, and the like of this, which we now call Scepticism, is
precisely the black malady and life-foe, against which all teaching and
discoursing since man's life began has directed itself: the battle of Belief
against Unbelief is the never-ending battle! Neither is it in the way of
crimination that one would wish to speak. Scepticism, for that century, we must
consider as the decay of old ways of believing, the preparation afar off for
new better and wider ways, an inevitable thing. We will not blame men for it;
we will lament their hard fate. We will understand that destruction of old
forms is not destruction of everlasting substances; that Scepticism, as
sorrowful and hateful as we see it, is not an end but a beginning. The other
day speaking, without prior purpose that way, of Bentham's theory of man and
man's life, I chanced to call it a more beggarly one than Mahomet's. I am bound
to say, now when it is once uttered, that such is my deliberate opinion. Not
that one would mean offence against the man Jeremy Bentham, or those who
respect and believe him. Bentham himself, and even the creed of Bentham, seems
to me comparatively worthy of praise. It is a determinate being what all the
world, in a cowardly half-and-half manner, was tending to be. Let us have the
crisis; we shall either have death or the cure. I call this gross, steam-engine
Utilitarianism an approach towards new Faith. It was a laying-down of cant; a
saying to oneself: "Well then, this world is a dead iron machine, the god
of it Gravitation and selfish Hunger; let us see what, by checking and
balancing, and good adjustment of tooth and pinion, can be made of it!"
Benthamism has something complete, manful, in such fearless committal of itself
to what it finds true; you may call it Heroic, though a Heroism with its eyes
put out! It is the culminating point, and fearless ultimatum, of what lay in
the half-and-half state, pervading man's whole existence in that Eighteenth
Century. It seems to me, all deniers of Godhood, and all lip-believers of it,
are bound to be Benthamites, if they have courage and honesty. Benthamism is an
eyeless Heroism: the Human Species, like a hapless blinded Samson grinding in
the Philistine Mill, clasps convulsively the pillars of its Mill; brings huge
ruin down, but ultimately deliverance withal. Of Bentham I meant to say no
harm. But this I do say, and would wish all men to know and lay to heart, that
he who discerns nothing but Mechanism in the Universe has in the fatalest way
missed the secret of the Universe altogether. That all Godhood should vanish
out of men's conception of this Universe seems to me precisely the most brutal
error, I will not disparage Heathenism by calling it a Heathen error, that
men could fall into. It is not true; it is false at the very heart of it. A man
who thinks so will think wrong about all things in the world; this original sin
will vitiate all other conclusions he can form. One might call it the most
lamentable of Delusions, not forgetting Witchcraft itself! Witchcraft
worshipped at least a living Devil; but this worships a dead iron Devil; no
God, not even a Devil! Whatsoever is noble, divine, inspired, drops thereby out
of life. There remains everywhere in life a despicable caput-mortuum; the
mechanical hull, all soul fled out of it. How can a man act heroically? The
"Doctrine of Motives" will teach him that it is, under more or less
disguise, nothing but a wretched love of Pleasure, fear of Pain; that Hunger,
of applause, of cash, of whatsoever victual it may be, is the ultimate fact of
man's life. Atheism, in brief; which does indeed frightfully punish itself.
The man, I say, is become spiritually a paralytic man; this godlike Universe a
dead mechanical steam-engine, all working by motives, checks, balances, and I
know not what; wherein, as in the detestable belly of some Phalaris'-Bull of
his own contriving, he the poor Phalaris sits miserably dying! Belief I define
to be the healthy act of a man's mind. It is a mysterious indescribable
process, that of getting to believe; indescribable, as all vital acts are. We
have our mind given us, not that it may cavil and argue, but that it may see
into something, give us clear belief and understanding about something, whereon
we are then to proceed to act. Doubt, truly, is not itself a crime. Certainly
we do not rush out, clutch up the first thing we find, and straightway believe
that! All manner of doubt, inquiry, [Gr.] skepsis as it is named, about all
manner of objects, dwells in every reasonable mind. It is the mystic working of
the mind, on the object it is getting to know and believe. Belief comes out of
all this, above ground, like the tree from its hidden roots. But now if, even
on common things, we require that a man keep his doubts silent, and not babble
of them till they in some measure become affirmations or denials; how much more
in regard to the highest things, impossible to speak of in words at all! That a
man parade his doubt, and get to imagine that debating and logic (which means
at best only the manner of telling us your thought, your belief or disbelief,
about a thing) is the triumph and true work of what intellect he has: alas,
this is as if you should overturn the tree, and instead of green boughs, leaves
and fruits, show us ugly taloned roots turned up into the air, and no growth,
only death and misery going on! For the Scepticism, as I said, is not
intellectual only; it is moral also; a chronic atrophy and disease of the whole
soul. A man lives by believing something; not by debating and arguing about
many things. A sad case for him when all that he can manage to believe is
something he can button in his pocket, and with one or the other organ eat and
digest! Lower than that he will not get. We call those ages in which he gets so
low the mournfulest, sickest and meanest of all ages. The world's heart is
palsied, sick: how can any limb of it be whole? Genuine Acting ceases in all
departments of the world's work; dexterous Similitude of Acting begins. The
world's wages are pocketed, the world's work is not done. Heroes have gone out;
Quacks have come in. Accordingly, what Century, since the end of the Roman
world, which also was a time of scepticism, simulacra and universal decadence,
so abounds with Quacks as that Eighteenth? Consider them, with their tumid
sentimental vaporing about virtue, benevolence, the wretched Quack-squadron,
Cagliostro at the head of them! Few men were without quackery; they had got to
consider it a necessary ingredient and amalgam for truth. Chatham, our brave
Chatham himself, comes down to the House, all wrapt and bandaged; he "has
crawled out in great bodily suffering," and so on; forgets, says Walpole,
that he is acting the sick man; in the fire of debate, snatches his arm from
the sling, and oratorically swings and brandishes it! Chatham himself lives the
strangest mimetic life, half-hero, half-quack, all along. For indeed the world
is full of dupes; and you have to gain the world's suffrage! How the duties of
the world will be done in that case, what quantities of error, which means
failure, which means sorrow and misery, to some and to many, will gradually
accumulate in all provinces of the world's business, we need not compute. It
seems to me, you lay your finger here on the heart of the world's maladies,
when you call it a Sceptical World. An insincere world; a godless untruth of a
world! It is out of this, as I consider, that the whole tribe of social pestilences,
French Revolutions, Chartisms, and what not, have derived their being, their
chief necessity to be. This must alter. Till this alter, nothing can
beneficially alter. My one hope of the world, my inexpugnable consolation in
looking at the miseries of the world, is that this is altering. Here and there
one does now find a man who knows, as of old, that this world is a Truth, and
no Plausibility and Falsity; that he himself is alive, not dead or paralytic;
and that the world is alive, instinct with Godhood, beautiful and awful, even
as in the beginning of days! One man once knowing this, many men, all men, must
by and by come to know it. It lies there clear, for whosoever will take the
spectacles off his eyes and honestly look, to know! For such a man the
Unbelieving Century, with its unblessed Products, is already past; a new
century is already come. The old unblessed Products and Performances, as solid
as they look, are Phantasms, preparing speedily to vanish. To this and the
other noisy, very great-looking Simulacrum with the whole world huzzaing at its
heels, he can say, composedly stepping aside: Thou art not true; thou art not
extant, only semblant; go thy way! Yes, hollow Formulism, gross Benthamism,
and other unheroic atheistic Insincerity is visibly and even rapidly declining.
An unbelieving Eighteenth Century is but an exception, such as now and then
occurs. I prophesy that the world will once more become sincere; a believing
world; with many Heroes in it, a heroic world! It will then be a victorious
world; never till then. Or indeed what of the world and its victories? Men
speak too much about the world. Each one of us here, let the world go how it
will, and be victorious or not victorious, has he not a Life of his own to
lead? One Life; a little gleam of Time between two Eternities; no second chance
to us forevermore! It were well for us to live not as fools and simulacra, but
as wise and realities. The world's being saved will not save us; nor the
world's being lost destroy us. We should look to ourselves: there is great
merit here in the "duty of staying at home"! And, on the whole, to
say truth, I never heard of "world's" being "saved" in any
other way. That mania of saving worlds is itself a piece of the Eighteenth
Century with its windy sentimentalism. Let us not follow it too far. For the
saving of the world I will trust confidently to the Maker of the world; and
look a little to my own saving, which I am more competent to! In brief, for
the world's sake, and for our own, we will rejoice greatly that Scepticism,
Insincerity, Mechanical Atheism, with all their poison-dews, are going, and as
good as gone. Now it was under such conditions, in those times of Johnson,
that our Men of Letters had to live. Times in which there was properly no truth
in life. Old truths had fallen nigh dumb; the new lay yet hidden, not trying to
speak. That Man's Life here below was a Sincerity and Fact, and would forever
continue such, no new intimation, in that dusk of the world, had yet dawned. No
intimation; not even any French Revolution, which we define to be a Truth
once more, though a Truth clad in hell-fire! How different was the Luther's
pilgrimage, with its assured goal, from the Johnson's, girt with mere
traditions, suppositions, grown now incredible, unintelligible! Mahomet's
Formulas were of "wood waxed and oiled," and could be burnt out of
one's way: poor Johnson's were far more difficult to burn. The strong man
will ever find work, which means difficulty, pain, to the full measure of his strength.
But to make out a victory, in those circumstances of our poor Hero as Man of
Letters, was perhaps more difficult than in any. Not obstruction,
disorganization, Bookseller Osborne and Fourpence-halfpenny a day; not this
alone; but the light of his own soul was taken from him. No landmark on the
Earth; and, alas, what is that to having no loadstar in the Heaven! We need not
wonder that none of those Three men rose to victory. That they fought truly is
the highest praise. With a mournful sympathy we will contemplate, if not three
living victorious Heroes, as I said, the Tombs of three fallen Heroes! They
fell for us too; making a way for us. There are the mountains which they hurled
abroad in their confused War of the Giants; under which, their strength and
life spent, they now lie buried.
I have already written of these three Literary Heroes,
expressly or incidentally; what I suppose is known to most of you; what need
not be spoken or written a second time. They concern us here as the singular
Prophets of that singular age; for such they virtually were; and the aspect
they and their world exhibit, under this point of view, might lead us into
reflections enough! I call them, all three, Genuine Men more or less;
faithfully, for most part unconsciously, struggling to be genuine, and plant
themselves on the everlasting truth of things. This to a degree that eminently
distinguishes them from the poor artificial mass of their contemporaries; and
renders them worthy to be considered as Speakers, in some measure, of the
everlasting truth, as Prophets in that age of theirs. By Nature herself a noble
necessity was laid on them to be so. They were men of such magnitude that they
could not live on unrealities, clouds, froth and all inanity gave way under
them: there was no footing for them but on firm earth; no rest or regular
motion for them, if they got not footing there. To a certain extent, they were
Sons of Nature once more in an age of Artifice; once more, Original Men. As for
Johnson, I have always considered him to be, by nature, one of our great
English souls. A strong and noble man; so much left undeveloped in him to the
last: in a kindlier element what might he not have been, Poet, Priest,
sovereign Ruler! On the whole, a man must not complain of his "element,"
of his "time," or the like; it is thriftless work doing so. His time
is bad: well then, he is there to make it better! Johnson's youth was poor,
isolated, hopeless, very miserable. Indeed, it does not seem possible that, in
any the favorablest outward circumstances, Johnson's life could have been other
than a painful one. The world might have had more of profitable work out of
him, or less; but his effort against the world's work could never have been a
light one. Nature, in return for his nobleness, had said to him, Live in an
element of diseased sorrow. Nay, perhaps the sorrow and the nobleness were
intimately and even inseparably connected with each other. At all events, poor
Johnson had to go about girt with continual hypochondria, physical and
spiritual pain. Like a Hercules with the burning Nessus'-shirt on him, which
shoots in on him dull incurable misery: the Nessus'-shirt not to be stript off,
which is his own natural skin! In this manner he had to live. Figure him there,
with his scrofulous diseases, with his great greedy heart, and unspeakable
chaos of thoughts; stalking mournful as a stranger in this Earth; eagerly
devouring what spiritual thing he could come at: school-languages and other
merely grammatical stuff, if there were nothing better! The largest soul that
was in all England; and provision made for it of "fourpence-halfpenny a
day." Yet a giant invincible soul; a true man's. One remembers always that
story of the shoes at Oxford: the rough, seamy-faced, rawboned College Servitor
stalking about, in winter-season, with his shoes worn out; how the charitable
Gentleman Commoner secretly places a new pair at his door; and the rawboned
Servitor, lifting them, looking at them near, with his dim eyes, with what
thoughts, pitches them out of window! Wet feet, mud, frost, hunger or what
you will; but not beggary: we cannot stand beggary! Rude stubborn self-help
here; a whole world of squalor, rudeness, confused misery and want, yet of
nobleness and manfulness withal. It is a type of the man's life, this pitching
away of the shoes. An original man; not a second-hand, borrowing or begging
man. Let us stand on our own basis, at any rate! On such shoes as we ourselves
can get. On frost and mud, if you will, but honestly on that; on the reality
and substance which Nature gives us, not on the semblance, on the thing she has
given another than us! And yet with all this rugged pride of manhood and
self-help, was there ever soul more tenderly affectionate, loyally submissive
to what was really higher than he? Great souls are always loyally submissive,
reverent to what is over them; only small mean souls are otherwise. I could not
find a better proof of what I said the other day, That the sincere man was by
nature the obedient man; that only in a World of Heroes was there loyal
Obedience to the Heroic. The essence of originality is not that it be new:
Johnson believed altogether in the old; he found the old opinions credible for
him, fit for him; and in a right heroic manner lived under them. He is well
worth study in regard to that. For we are to say that Johnson was far other
than a mere man of words and formulas; he was a man of truths and facts. He
stood by the old formulas; the happier was it for him that he could so stand:
but in all formulas that he could stand by, there needed to be a most genuine
substance. Very curious how, in that poor Paper-age, so barren, artificial,
thick-quilted with Pedantries, Hearsays, the great Fact of this Universe glared
in, forever wonderful, indubitable, unspeakable, divine-infernal, upon this man
too! How he harmonized his Formulas with it, how he managed at all under such
circumstances: that is a thing worth seeing. A thing "to be looked at with
reverence, with pity, with awe." That Church of St. Clement Danes, where
Johnson still worshipped in the era of Voltaire, is to me a venerable place. It
was in virtue of his sincerity, of his speaking still in some sort from the
heart of Nature, though in the current artificial dialect, that Johnson was a
Prophet. Are not all dialects "artificial"? Artificial things are not
all false; nay every true Product of Nature will infallibly shape itself; we
may say all artificial things are, at the starting of them, true. What we call
"Formulas" are not in their origin bad; they are indispensably good.
Formula is method, habitude; found wherever man is found. Formulas fashion
themselves as Paths do, as beaten Highways, leading toward some sacred or high
object, whither many men are bent. Consider it. One man, full of heartfelt
earnest impulse, finds out a way of doing somewhat, were it of uttering his
soul's reverence for the Highest, were it but of fitly saluting his fellow-man.
An inventor was needed to do that, a poet; he has articulated the
dim-struggling thought that dwelt in his own and many hearts. This is his way
of doing that; these are his footsteps, the beginning of a "Path."
And now see: the second men travels naturally in the footsteps of his foregoer,
it is the easiest method. In the footsteps of his foregoer; yet with
improvements, with changes where such seem good; at all events with
enlargements, the Path ever widening itself as more travel it; till at last
there is a broad Highway whereon the whole world may travel and drive. While
there remains a City or Shrine, or any Reality to drive to, at the farther end,
the Highway shall be right welcome! When the City is gone, we will forsake the
Highway. In this manner all Institutions, Practices, Regulated Things in the
world have come into existence, and gone out of existence. Formulas all begin
by being full of substance; you may call them the skin, the articulation into
shape, into limbs and skin, of a substance that is already there: they had not
been there otherwise. Idols, as we said, are not idolatrous till they become
doubtful, empty for the worshipper's heart. Much as we talk against Formulas, I
hope no one of us is ignorant withal of the high significance of true Formulas;
that they were, and will ever be, the indispensablest furniture of our
habitation in this world. Mark, too, how little Johnson boasts of his
"sincerity." He has no suspicion of his being particularly sincere,
of his being particularly anything! A hard-struggling, weary-hearted man, or
"scholar" as he calls himself, trying hard to get some honest
livelihood in the world, not to starve, but to live without stealing! A noble
unconsciousness is in him. He does not "engrave Truth on his
watch-seal;" no, but he stands by truth, speaks by it, works and lives by
it. Thus it ever is. Think of it once more. The man whom Nature has appointed
to do great things is, first of all, furnished with that openness to Nature
which renders him incapable of being insincere! To his large, open,
deep-feeling heart Nature is a Fact: all hearsay is hearsay; the unspeakable
greatness of this Mystery of Life, let him acknowledge it or not, nay even
though he seem to forget it or deny it, is ever present to him, fearful and
wonderful, on this hand and on that. He has a basis of sincerity; unrecognized,
because never questioned or capable of question. Mirabeau, Mahomet, Cromwell,
Napoleon: all the Great Men I ever heard of have this as the primary material
of them. Innumerable commonplace men are debating, are talking everywhere their
commonplace doctrines, which they have learned by logic, by rote, at
second-hand: to that kind of man all this is still nothing. He must have truth;
truth which he feels to be true. How shall he stand otherwise? His whole soul,
at all moments, in all ways, tells him that there is no standing. He is under
the noble necessity of being true. Johnson's way of thinking about this world
is not mine, any more than Mahomet's was: but I recognize the everlasting
element of heart-sincerity in both; and see with pleasure how neither of them
remains ineffectual. Neither of them is as chaff sown; in both of them is
something which the seedfield will grow. Johnson was a Prophet to his people;
preached a Gospel to them, as all like him always do. The highest Gospel he
preached we may describe as a kind of Moral Prudence: "in a world where
much is to be done, and little is to be known," see how you will do it! A
thing well worth preaching. "A world where much is to be done, and little
is to be known:" do not sink yourselves in boundless bottomless abysses of
Doubt, of wretched god-forgetting Unbelief; you were miserable then,
powerless, mad: how could you do or work at all? Such Gospel Johnson preached
and taught; coupled, theoretically and practically, with this other great
Gospel, "Clear your mind of Cant!" Have no trade with Cant: stand on
the cold mud in the frosty weather, but let it be in your own real torn shoes:
"that will be better for you," as Mahomet says! I call this, I call
these two things joined together, a great Gospel, the greatest perhaps that was
possible at that time. Johnson's Writings, which once had such currency and
celebrity, are now as it were disowned by the young generation. It is not
wonderful; Johnson's opinions are fast becoming obsolete: but his style of
thinking and of living, we may hope, will never become obsolete. I find in
Johnson's Books the indisputablest traces of a great intellect and great heart;
ever welcome, under what obstructions and perversions soever. They are
sincere words, those of his; he means things by them. A wondrous buckram style,
the best he could get to then; a measured grandiloquence, stepping or rather
stalking along in a very solemn way, grown obsolete now; sometimes a tumid size
of phraseology not in proportion to the contents of it: all this you will put
up with. For the phraseology, tumid or not, has always something within it. So
many beautiful styles and books, with nothing in them; a man is a malefactor
to the world who writes such! They are the avoidable kind! Had Johnson left nothing
but his Dictionary, one might have traced there a great intellect, a genuine
man. Looking to its clearness of definition, its general solidity, honesty,
insight and successful method, it may be called the best of all Dictionaries.
There is in it a kind of architectural nobleness; it stands there like a great
solid square-built edifice, finished, symmetrically complete: you judge that a
true Builder did it. One word, in spite of our haste, must be granted to poor
Bozzy. He passes for a mean, inflated, gluttonous creature; and was so in many
senses. Yet the fact of his reverence for Johnson will ever remain noteworthy.
The foolish conceited Scotch Laird, the most conceited man of his time,
approaching in such awe-struck attitude the great dusty irascible Pedagogue in
his mean garret there: it is a genuine reverence for Excellence; a worship for
Heroes, at a time when neither Heroes nor worship were surmised to exist.
Heroes, it would seem, exist always, and a certain worship of them! We will
also take the liberty to deny altogether that of the witty Frenchman, that no
man is a Hero to his valet-de-chambre. Or if so, it is not the Hero's blame,
but the Valet's: that his soul, namely, is a mean valet-soul! He expects his
Hero to advance in royal stage-trappings, with measured step, trains borne
behind him, trumpets sounding before him. It should stand rather, No man can be
a Grand- Monarque to his valet-de-chambre. Strip your Louis Quatorze of his
king-gear, and there is left nothing but a poor forked radish with a head
fantastically carved; admirable to no valet. The Valet does not know a Hero
when he sees him! Alas, no: it requires a kind of Hero to do that; and one of
the world's wants, in this as in other senses, is for most part want of such.
On the whole, shall we not say, that Boswell's admiration was well bestowed;
that he could have found no soul in all England so worthy of bending down
before? Shall we not say, of this great mournful Johnson too, that he guided
his difficult confused existence wisely; led it well, like a right valiant man?
That waste chaos of Authorship by trade; that waste chaos of Scepticism in
religion and politics, in life-theory and life-practice; in his poverty, in his
dust and dimness, with the sick body and the rusty coat: he made it do for him,
like a brave man. Not wholly without a loadstar in the Eternal; he had still a
loadstar, as the brave all need to have: with his eye set on that, he would
change his course for nothing in these confused vortices of the lower sea of Time.
"To the Spirit of Lies, bearing death and hunger, he would in nowise
strike his flag." Brave old Samuel: ultimus Romanorum!
Of Rousseau and his Heroism I cannot say so much. He
is not what I call a strong man. A morbid, excitable, spasmodic man; at best,
intense rather than strong. He had not "the talent of Silence," an
invaluable talent; which few Frenchmen, or indeed men of any sort in these
times, excel in! The suffering man ought really "to consume his own
smoke;" there is no good in emitting smoke till you have made it into
fire, which, in the metaphorical sense too, all smoke is capable of becoming!
Rousseau has not depth or width, not calm force for difficulty; the first
characteristic of true greatness. A fundamental mistake to call vehemence and
rigidity strength! A man is not strong who takes convulsion-fits; though six
men cannot hold him then. He that can walk under the heaviest weight without
staggering, he is the strong man. We need forever, especially in these
loud-shrieking days, to remind ourselves of that. A man who cannot hold his
peace, till the time come for speaking and acting, is no right man. Poor
Rousseau's face is to me expressive of him. A high but narrow contracted
intensity in it: bony brows; deep, strait-set eyes, in which there is something
bewildered-looking, bewildered, peering with lynx-eagerness. A face full of
misery, even ignoble misery, and also of the antagonism against that; something
mean, plebeian there, redeemed only by intensity: the face of what is called a
Fanatic, a sadly contracted Hero! We name him here because, with all his
drawbacks, and they are many, he has the first and chief characteristic of a
Hero: he is heartily in earnest. In earnest, if ever man was; as none of these
French Philosophers were. Nay, one would say, of an earnestness too great for
his otherwise sensitive, rather feeble nature; and which indeed in the end
drove him into the strangest incoherences, almost delirations. There had come,
at last, to be a kind of madness in him: his Ideas possessed him like demons;
hurried him so about, drove him over steep places! The fault and misery of
Rousseau was what we easily name by a single word, Egoism; which is indeed the
source and summary of all faults and miseries whatsoever. He had not perfected
himself into victory over mere Desire; a mean Hunger, in many sorts, was still
the motive principle of him. I am afraid he was a very vain man; hungry for the
praises of men. You remember Genlis's experience of him. She took Jean Jacques
to the Theatre; he bargaining for a strict incognito, "He would not be
seen there for the world!" The curtain did happen nevertheless to be drawn
aside: the Pit recognized Jean Jacques, but took no great notice of him! He
expressed the bitterest indignation; gloomed all evening, spake no other than
surly words. The glib Countess remained entirely convinced that his anger was
not at being seen, but at not being applauded when seen. How the whole nature
of the man is poisoned; nothing but suspicion, self-isolation, fierce moody
ways! He could not live with anybody. A man of some rank from the country, who
visited him often, and used to sit with him, expressing all reverence and
affection for him, comes one day; finds Jean Jacques full of the sourest
unintelligible humor. "Monsieur," said Jean Jacques, with flaming
eyes, "I know why you come here. You come to see what a poor life I lead;
how little is in my poor pot that is boiling there. Well, look into the pot!
There is half a pound of meat, one carrot and three onions; that is all: go and
tell the whole world that, if you like, Monsieur!" A man of this sort
was far gone. The whole world got itself supplied with anecdotes, for light
laughter, for a certain theatrical interest, from these perversions and contortions
of poor Jean Jacques. Alas, to him they were not laughing or theatrical; too
real to him! The contortions of a dying gladiator: the crowded amphitheatre
looks on with entertainment; but the gladiator is in agonies and dying. And yet
this Rousseau, as we say, with his passionate appeals to Mothers, with his
contrat-social, with his celebrations of Nature, even of savage life in Nature,
did once more touch upon Reality, struggle towards Reality; was doing the
function of a Prophet to his Time. As he could, and as the Time could!
Strangely through all that defacement, degradation and almost madness, there is
in the inmost heart of poor Rousseau a spark of real heavenly fire. Once more,
out of the element of that withered mocking Philosophism, Scepticism and Persiflage,
there has arisen in this man the ineradicable feeling and knowledge that this
Life of ours is true: not a Scepticism, Theorem, or Persiflage, but a Fact, an
awful Reality. Nature had made that revelation to him; had ordered him to speak
it out. He got it spoken out; if not well and clearly, then ill and dimly, as
clearly as he could. Nay what are all errors and perversities of his, even
those stealings of ribbons, aimless confused miseries and vagabondisms, if we
will interpret them kindly, but the blinkard dazzlement and staggerings to and
fro of a man sent on an errand he is too weak for, by a path he cannot yet
find? Men are led by strange ways. One should have tolerance for a man, hope of
him; leave him to try yet what he will do. While life lasts, hope lasts for
every man. Of Rousseau's literary talents, greatly celebrated still among his
countrymen, I do not say much. His Books, like himself, are what I call
unhealthy; not the good sort of Books. There is a sensuality in Rousseau.
Combined with such an intellectual gift as his, it makes pictures of a certain
gorgeous attractiveness: but they are not genuinely poetical. Not white
sunlight: something operatic; a kind of rose-pink, artificial bedizenment. It
is frequent, or rather it is universal, among the French since his time. Madame
de Stael has something of it; St. Pierre; and down onwards to the present
astonishing convulsionary "Literature of Desperation," it is
everywhere abundant. That same rose-pink is not the right hue. Look at a Shakspeare,
at a Goethe, even at a Walter Scott! He who has once seen into this, has seen
the difference of the True from the Sham-True, and will discriminate them ever
afterwards. We had to observe in Johnson how much good a Prophet, under all
disadvantages and disorganizations, can accomplish for the world. In Rousseau
we are called to look rather at the fearful amount of evil which, under such
disorganization, may accompany the good. Historically it is a most pregnant
spectacle, that of Rousseau. Banished into Paris garrets, in the gloomy company
of his own Thoughts and Necessities there; driven from post to pillar; fretted,
exasperated till the heart of him went mad, he had grown to feel deeply that
the world was not his friend nor the world's law. It was expedient, if any way
possible, that such a man should not have been set in flat hostility with the
world. He could be cooped into garrets, laughed at as a maniac, left to starve
like a wild beast in his cage; but he could not be hindered from setting the world
on fire. The French Revolution found its Evangelist in Rousseau. His
semi-delirious speculations on the miseries of civilized life, the
preferability of the savage to the civilized, and such like, helped well to
produce a whole delirium in France generally. True, you may well ask, What
could the world, the governors of the world, do with such a man? Difficult to
say what the governors of the world could do with him! What he could do with
them is unhappily clear enough, guillotine a great many of them! Enough now
of Rousseau.
It was a curious phenomenon, in the withered,
unbelieving second-hand Eighteenth Century, that of a Hero starting up, among
the artificial pasteboard figures and productions, in the guise of a Robert
Burns. Like a little well in the rocky desert places, like a sudden splendor
of Heaven in the artificial Vauxhall! People knew not what to make of it. They
took it for a piece of the Vauxhall fire-work; alas, it let itself be so taken,
though struggling half-blindly, as in bitterness of death, against that!
Perhaps no man had such a false reception from his fellow-men. Once more a very
wasteful life-drama was enacted under the sun. The tragedy of Burns's life is
known to all of you. Surely we may say, if discrepancy between place held and
place merited constitute perverseness of lot for a man, no lot could be more
perverse then Burns's. Among those second-hand acting-figures, mimes for most
part, of the Eighteenth Century, once more a giant Original Man; one of those
men who reach down to the perennial Deeps, who take rank with the Heroic among
men: and he was born in a poor Ayrshire hut. The largest soul of all the
British lands came among us in the shape of a hard-handed Scottish Peasant. His
Father, a poor toiling man, tried various things; did not succeed in any; was
involved in continual difficulties. The Steward, Factor as the Scotch call him,
used to send letters and threatenings, Burns says, "which threw us all
into tears." The brave, hard-toiling, hard-suffering Father, his brave
heroine of a wife; and those children, of whom Robert was one! In this Earth,
so wide otherwise, no shelter for them. The letters "threw us all into
tears:" figure it. The brave Father, I say always; a silent Hero and
Poet; without whom the son had never been a speaking one! Burns's Schoolmaster
came afterwards to London, learnt what good society was; but declares that in
no meeting of men did he ever enjoy better discourse than at the hearth of this
peasant. And his poor "seven acres of nursery-ground," not that,
nor the miserable patch of clay-farm, nor anything he tried to get a living by,
would prosper with him; he had a sore unequal battle all his days. But he stood
to it valiantly; a wise, faithful, unconquerable man; swallowing down how
many sore sufferings daily into silence; fighting like an unseen Hero, nobody
publishing newspaper paragraphs about his nobleness; voting pieces of plate to
him! However, he was not lost; nothing is lost. Robert is there the outcome of
him, and indeed of many generations of such as him. This Burns appeared under
every disadvantage: uninstructed, poor, born only to hard manual toil; and
writing, when it came to that, in a rustic special dialect, known only to a
small province of the country he lived in. Had he written, even what he did
write, in the general language of England, I doubt not he had already become
universally recognized as being, or capable to be, one of our greatest men.
That he should have tempted so many to penetrate through the rough husk of that
dialect of his, is proof that there lay something far from common within it. He
has gained a certain recognition, and is continuing to do so over all quarters
of our wide Saxon world: wheresoever a Saxon dialect is spoken, it begins to be
understood, by personal inspection of this and the other, that one of the most
considerable Saxon men of the Eighteenth Century was an Ayrshire Peasant named
Robert Burns. Yes, I will say, here too was a piece of the right Saxon stuff:
strong as the Harz-rock, rooted in the depths of the world; rock, yet with
wells of living softness in it! A wild impetuous whirlwind of passion and
faculty slumbered quiet there; such heavenly melody dwelling in the heart of
it. A noble rough genuineness; homely, rustic, honest; true simplicity of
strength; with its lightning-fire, with its soft dewy pity; like the old
Norse Thor, the Peasant-god! Burns's Brother Gilbert, a man of much sense and
worth, has told me that Robert, in his young days, in spite of their hardship,
was usually the gayest of speech; a fellow of infinite frolic, laughter, sense
and heart; far pleasanter to hear there, stript cutting peats in the bog, or
such like, than he ever afterwards knew him. I can well believe it. This basis
of mirth ("fond gaillard," as old Marquis Mirabeau calls it), a
primal element of sunshine and joyfulness, coupled with his other deep and
earnest qualities, is one of the most attractive characteristics of Burns. A
large fund of Hope dwells in him; spite of his tragical history, he is not a
mourning man. He shakes his sorrows gallantly aside; bounds forth victorious
over them. It is as the lion shaking "dew-drops from his mane;" as
the swift-bounding horse, that laughs at the shaking of the spear. But
indeed, Hope, Mirth, of the sort like Burns's, are they not the outcome
properly of warm generous affection, such as is the beginning of all to every
man? You would think it strange if I called Burns the most gifted British soul
we had in all that century of his: and yet I believe the day is coming when
there will be little danger in saying so. His writings, all that he did under
such obstructions, are only a poor fragment of him. Professor Stewart remarked
very justly, what indeed is true of all Poets good for much, that his poetry
was not any particular faculty; but the general result of a naturally vigorous
original mind expressing itself in that way. Burns's gifts, expressed in
conversation, are the theme of all that ever heard him. All kinds of gifts:
from the gracefulest utterances of courtesy, to the highest fire of passionate
speech; loud floods of mirth, soft wailings of affection, laconic emphasis,
clear piercing insight; all was in him. Witty duchesses celebrate him as a man
whose speech "led them off their feet." This is beautiful: but still
more beautiful that which Mr. Lockhart has recorded, which I have more than
once alluded to, How the waiters and ostlers at inns would get out of bed, and
come crowding to hear this man speak! Waiters and ostlers: they too were men,
and here was a man! I have heard much about his speech; but one of the best
things I ever heard of it was, last year, from a venerable gentleman long
familiar with him. That it was speech distinguished by always having something
in it. "He spoke rather little than much," this old man told me;
"sat rather silent in those early days, as in the company of persons above
him; and always when he did speak, it was to throw new light on the
matter." I know not why any one should ever speak otherwise! But if we
look at his general force of soul, his healthy robustness every way, the rugged
downrightness, penetration, generous valor and manfulness that was in him,
where shall we readily find a better-gifted man? Among the great men of the
Eighteenth Century, I sometimes feel as if Burns might be found to resemble
Mirabeau more than any other. They differ widely in vesture; yet look at them
intrinsically. There is the same burly thick-necked strength of body as of
soul; built, in both cases, on what the old Marquis calls a fond gaillard. By
nature, by course of breeding, indeed by nation, Mirabeau has much more of
bluster; a noisy, forward, unresting man. But the characteristic of Mirabeau
too is veracity and sense, power of true insight, superiority of vision. The
thing that he says is worth remembering. It is a flash of insight into some
object or other: so do both these men speak. The same raging passions; capable
too in both of manifesting themselves as the tenderest noble affections. Wit;
wild laughter, energy, directness, sincerity: these were in both. The types of
the two men are not dissimilar. Burns too could have governed, debated in
National Assemblies; politicized, as few could. Alas, the courage which had to
exhibit itself in capture of smuggling schooners in the Solway Frith; in
keeping silence over so much, where no good speech, but only inarticulate rage
was possible: this might have bellowed forth Ushers de Breze and the like; and
made itself visible to all men, in managing of kingdoms, in ruling of great ever-memorable
epochs! But they said to him reprovingly, his Official Superiors said, and
wrote: "You are to work, not think." Of your thinking-faculty, the
greatest in this land, we have no need; you are to gauge beer there; for that
only are you wanted. Very notable; and worth mentioning, though we know what
is to be said and answered! As if Thought, Power of Thinking, were not, at all
times, in all places and situations of the world, precisely the thing that was
wanted. The fatal man, is he not always the unthinking man, the man who cannot
think and see; but only grope, and hallucinate, and missee the nature of the
thing he works with? He mis-sees it, mistakes it as we say; takes it for one
thing, and it is another thing, and leaves him standing like a Futility
there! He is the fatal man; unutterably fatal, put in the high places of men.
"Why complain of this?" say some: "Strength is mournfully denied
its arena; that was true from of old." Doubtless; and the worse for the
arena, answer I! Complaining profits little; stating of the truth may profit.
That a Europe, with its French Revolution just breaking out, finds no need of a
Burns except for gauging beer, is a thing I, for one, cannot rejoice at!
Once more we have to say here, that the chief quality of Burns is the sincerity
of him. So in his Poetry, so in his Life. The song he sings is not of
fantasticalities; it is of a thing felt, really there; the prime merit of this,
as of all in him, and of his Life generally, is truth. The Life of Burns is what
we may call a great tragic sincerity. A sort of savage sincerity, not cruel,
far from that; but wild, wrestling naked with the truth of things. In that
sense, there is something of the savage in all great men. Hero-worship, Odin,
Burns? Well; these Men of Letters too were not without a kind of Hero-worship:
but what a strange condition has that got into now! The waiters and ostlers of
Scotch inns, prying about the door, eager to catch any word that fell from
Burns, were doing unconscious reverence to the Heroic. Johnson had his Boswell
for worshipper. Rousseau had worshippers enough; princes calling on him in his
mean garret; the great, the beautiful doing reverence to the poor moon-struck
man. For himself a most portentous contradiction; the two ends of his life not
to be brought into harmony. He sits at the tables of grandees; and has to copy
music for his own living. He cannot even get his music copied: "By dint of
dining out," says he, "I run the risk of dying by starvation at home."
For his worshippers too a most questionable thing! If doing Hero-worship well
or badly be the test of vital well-being or ill-being to a generation, can we
say that these generations are very first-rate? And yet our heroic Men of
Letters do teach, govern, are kings, priests, or what you like to call them;
intrinsically there is no preventing it by any means whatever. The world has to
obey him who thinks and sees in the world. The world can alter the manner of
that; can either have it as blessed continuous summer sunshine, or as unblessed
black thunder and tornado, with unspeakable difference of profit for the
world! The manner of it is very alterable; the matter and fact of it is not
alterable by any power under the sky. Light; or, failing that, lightning: the
world can take its choice. Not whether we call an Odin god, prophet, priest, or
what we call him; but whether we believe the word he tells us: there it all
lies. If it be a true word, we shall have to believe it; believing it, we shall
have to do it. What name or welcome we give him or it, is a point that concerns
ourselves mainly. It, the new Truth, new deeper revealing of the Secret of this
Universe, is verily of the nature of a message from on high; and must and will
have itself obeyed. My last remark is on that notablest phasis of Burns's
history, his visit to Edinburgh. Often it seems to me as if his demeanor
there were the highest proof he gave of what a fund of worth and genuine
manhood was in him. If we think of it, few heavier burdens could be laid on the
strength of a man. So sudden; all common Lionism. which ruins innumerable men,
was as nothing to this. It is as if Napoleon had been made a King of, not
gradually, but at once from the Artillery Lieutenancy in the Regiment La Fere.
Burns, still only in his twenty-seventh year, is no longer even a ploughman; he
is flying to the West Indies to escape disgrace and a jail. This month he is a
ruined peasant, his wages seven pounds a year, and these gone from him: next
month he is in the blaze of rank and beauty, handing down jewelled Duchesses to
dinner; the cynosure of all eyes! Adversity is sometimes hard upon a man; but
for one man who can stand prosperity, there are a hundred that will stand
adversity. I admire much the way in which Burns met all this. Perhaps no man
one could point out, was ever so sorely tried, and so little forgot himself.
Tranquil, unastonished; not abashed, not inflated, neither awkwardness nor
affectation: he feels that he there is the man Robert Burns; that the
"rank is but the guinea-stamp;" that the celebrity is but the
candle-light, which will show what man, not in the least make him a better or
other man! Alas, it may readily, unless he look to it, make him a worse man; a
wretched inflated wind-bag, inflated till he burst, and become a dead lion;
for whom, as some one has said, "there is no resurrection of the
body;" worse than a living dog! Burns is admirable here. And yet, alas,
as I have observed elsewhere, these Lion-hunters were the ruin and death of
Burns. It was they that rendered it impossible for him to live! They gathered
round him in his Farm; hindered his industry; no place was remote enough from
them. He could not get his Lionism forgotten, honestly as he was disposed to do
so. He falls into discontents, into miseries, faults; the world getting ever
more desolate for him; health, character, peace of mind, all gone; solitary
enough now. It is tragical to think of! These men came but to see him; it was
out of no sympathy with him, nor no hatred to him. They came to get a little
amusement; they got their amusement; and the Hero's life went for it! Richter
says, in the Island of Sumatra there is a kind of "Light-chafers,"
large Fire-flies, which people stick upon spits, and illuminate the ways with
at night. Persons of condition can thus travel with a pleasant radiance, which
they much admire. Great honor to the Fire-flies! But !
[May 22, 1840.] Lecture VI. The Hero As King.
Cromwell, Napoleon: Modern Revolutionism.
We come now to the last form of Heroism; that which we
call Kingship. The Commander over Men; he to whose will our wills are to be
subordinated, and loyally surrender themselves, and find their welfare in doing
so, may be reckoned the most important of Great Men. He is practically the
summary for us of all the various figures of Heroism; Priest, Teacher,
whatsoever of earthly or of spiritual dignity we can fancy to reside in a man, embodies
itself here, to command over us, to furnish us with constant practical
teaching, to tell us for the day and hour what we are to do. He is called Rex,
Regulator, Roi: our own name is still better; King, Konning, which means
Can-ning, Able-man. Numerous considerations, pointing towards deep,
questionable, and indeed unfathomable regions, present themselves here: on the
most of which we must resolutely for the present forbear to speak at all. As
Burke said that perhaps fair Trial by Jury was the soul of Government, and that
all legislation, administration, parliamentary debating, and the rest of it,
went on, in "order to bring twelve impartial men into a jury-box;"
so, by much stronger reason, may I say here, that the finding of your Ableman
and getting him invested with the symbols of ability, with dignity, worship
(worth-ship), royalty, kinghood, or whatever we call it, so that he may
actually have room to guide according to his faculty of doing it, is the
business, well or ill accomplished, of all social procedure whatsoever in this
world! Hustings-speeches, Parliamentary motions, Reform Bills, French
Revolutions, all mean at heart this; or else nothing. Find in any country the
Ablest Man that exists there; raise him to the supreme place, and loyally
reverence him: you have a perfect government for that country; no ballot-box,
parliamentary eloquence, voting, constitution-building, or other machinery
whatsoever can improve it a whit. It is in the perfect state; an ideal country.
The Ablest Man; he means also the truest-hearted, justest, the Noblest Man:
what he tells us to do must be precisely the wisest, fittest, that we could
anywhere or anyhow learn; the thing which it will in all ways behoove US,
with right loyal thankfulness and nothing doubting, to do! Our doing and life
were then, so far as government could regulate it, well regulated; that were
the ideal of constitutions. Alas, we know very well that Ideals can never be
completely embodied in practice. Ideals must ever lie a very great way off; and
we will right thankfully content ourselves with any not intolerable
approximation thereto! Let no man, as Schiller says, too querulously
"measure by a scale of perfection the meagre product of reality" in
this poor world of ours. We will esteem him no wise man; we will esteem him a
sickly, discontented, foolish man. And yet, on the other hand, it is never to
be forgotten that Ideals do exist; that if they be not approximated to at all,
the whole matter goes to wreck! Infallibly. No bricklayer builds a wall
perfectly perpendicular, mathematically this is not possible; a certain degree
of perpendicularity suffices him; and he, like a good bricklayer, who must have
done with his job, leaves it so. And yet if he sway too much from the
perpendicular; above all, if he throw plummet and level quite away from him,
and pile brick on brick heedless, just as it comes to hand! Such bricklayer,
I think, is in a bad way. He has forgotten himself: but the Law of Gravitation
does not forget to act on him; he and his wall rush down into confused welter
of ruin! This is the history of all rebellions, French Revolutions, social
explosions in ancient or modern times. You have put the too Unable Man at the
head of affairs! The too ignoble, unvaliant, fatuous man. You have forgotten
that there is any rule, or natural necessity whatever, of putting the Able Man
there. Brick must lie on brick as it may and can. Unable Simulacrum of Ability,
quack, in a word, must adjust himself with quack, in all manner of
administration of human things; which accordingly lie unadministered,
fermenting into unmeasured masses of failure, of indigent misery: in the
outward, and in the inward or spiritual, miserable millions stretch out the
hand for their due supply, and it is not there. The "law of
gravitation" acts; Nature's laws do none of them forget to act. The
miserable millions burst forth into Sansculottism, or some other sort of
madness: bricks and bricklayer lie as a fatal chaos! Much sorry stuff,
written some hundred years ago or more, about the "Divine right of
Kings," moulders unread now in the Public Libraries of this country. Far
be it from us to disturb the calm process by which it is disappearing
harmlessly from the earth, in those repositories! At the same time, not to let
the immense rubbish go without leaving us, as it ought, some soul of it behind
I will say that it did mean something; something true, which it is important
for us and all men to keep in mind. To assert that in whatever man you chose to
lay hold of (by this or the other plan of clutching at him); and claps a round
piece of metal on the head of, and called King, there straightway came to
reside a divine virtue, so that he became a kind of god, and a Divinity
inspired him with faculty and right to rule over you to all lengths: this,
what can we do with this but leave it to rot silently in the Public Libraries?
But I will say withal, and that is what these Divine-right men meant, That in
Kings, and in all human Authorities, and relations that men god-created can
form among each other, there is verily either a Divine Right or else a Diabolic
Wrong; one or the other of these two! For it is false altogether, what the last
Sceptical Century taught us, that this world is a steam-engine. There is a God
in this world; and a God's-sanction, or else the violation of such, does look
out from all ruling and obedience, from all moral acts of men. There is no act
more moral between men than that of rule and obedience. Woe to him that claims
obedience when it is not due; woe to him that refuses it when it is! God's law
is in that, I say, however the Parchment-laws may run: there is a Divine Right
or else a Diabolic Wrong at the heart of every claim that one man makes upon
another. It can do none of us harm to reflect on this: in all the relations of
life it will concern us; in Loyalty and Royalty, the highest of these. I esteem
the modern error, That all goes by self-interest and the checking and balancing
of greedy knaveries, and that in short, there is nothing divine whatever in the
association of men, a still more despicable error, natural as it is to an
unbelieving century, than that of a "divine right" in people called
Kings. I say, Find me the true Konning, King, or Able-man, and he has a divine
right over me. That we knew in some tolerable measure how to find him, and that
all men were ready to acknowledge his divine right when found: this is
precisely the healing which a sick world is everywhere, in these ages, seeking
after! The true King, as guide of the practical, has ever something of the
Pontiff in him, guide of the spiritual, from which all practice has its rise.
This too is a true saying, That the King is head of the Church. But we will
leave the Polemic stuff of a dead century to lie quiet on its bookshelves.
Certainly it is a fearful business, that of having
your Ableman to seek, and not knowing in what manner to proceed about it! That
is the world's sad predicament in these times of ours. They are times of
revolution, and have long been. The bricklayer with his bricks, no longer
heedful of plummet or the law of gravitation, have toppled, tumbled, and it all
welters as we see! But the beginning of it was not the French Revolution; that
is rather the end, we can hope. It were truer to say, the beginning was three
centuries farther back: in the Reformation of Luther. That the thing which
still called itself Christian Church had become a Falsehood, and brazenly went
about pretending to pardon men's sins for metallic coined money, and to do much
else which in the everlasting truth of Nature it did not now do: here lay the
vital malady. The inward being wrong, all outward went ever more and more
wrong. Belief died away; all was Doubt, Disbelief. The builder cast away his
plummet; said to himself, "What is gravitation? Brick lies on brick
there!" Alas, does it not still sound strange to many of us, the assertion
that there is a God's-truth in the business of god-created men; that all is not
a kind of grimace, an "expediency," diplomacy, one knows not what!
From that first necessary assertion of Luther's, "You, self-styled Papa,
you are no Father in God at all; you are a Chimera, whom I know not how to
name in polite language!" from that onwards to the shout which rose
round Camille Desmoulins in the Palais-Royal, "Aux armes!" when the
people had burst up against all manner of Chimeras, I find a natural
historical sequence. That shout too, so frightful, half-infernal, was a great
matter. Once more the voice of awakened nations; starting confusedly, as out
of nightmare, as out of death-sleep, into some dim feeling that Life was real;
that God's-world was not an expediency and diplomacy! Infernal; yes, since
they would not have it otherwise. Infernal, since not celestial or terrestrial!
Hollowness, insincerity has to cease; sincerity of some sort has to begin. Cost
what it may, reigns of terror, horrors of French Revolution or what else, we
have to return to truth. Here is a Truth, as I said: a Truth clad in hell-fire,
since they would not but have it so! A common theory among considerable
parties of men in England and elsewhere used to be, that the French Nation had,
in those days, as it were gone mad; that the French Revolution was a general
act of insanity, a temporary conversion of France and large sections of the
world into a kind of Bedlam. The Event had risen and raged; but was a madness
and nonentity, gone now happily into the region of Dreams and the
Picturesque! To such comfortable philosophers, the Three Days of July, 183O,
must have been a surprising phenomenon. Here is the French Nation risen again,
in musketry and death-struggle, out shooting and being shot, to make that same
mad French Revolution good! The sons and grandsons of those men, it would seem,
persist in the enterprise: they do not disown it; they will have it made good;
will have themselves shot, if it be not made good. To philosophers who had made
up their life-system, on that "madness" quietus, no phenomenon could
be more alarming. Poor Niebuhr, they say, the Prussian Professor and Historian,
fell broken-hearted in consequence; sickened, if we can believe it, and died of
the Three Days! It was surely not a very heroic death; little better than
Racine's, dying because Louis Fourteenth looked sternly on him once. The world
had stood some considerable shocks, in its time; might have been expected to
survive the Three Days too, and be found turning on its axis after even them!
The Three Days told all mortals that the old French Revolution, mad as it might
look, was not a transitory ebullition of Bedlam, but a genuine product of this
Earth where we all live; that it was verily a Fact, and that the world in
general would do well everywhere to regard it as such. Truly, without the
French Revolution, one would not know what to make of an age like this at all.
We will hail the French Revolution, as shipwrecked mariners might the sternest
rock, in a world otherwise all of baseless sea and waves. A true Apocalypse,
though a terrible one, to this false withered artificial time; testifying once more
that Nature is preternatural; if not divine, then diabolic; that Semblance is
not Reality; that it has to become Reality, or the world will take fire under
it, burn it into what it is, namely Nothing! Plausibility has ended; empty
Routine has ended; much has ended. This, as with a Trump of Doom, has been
proclaimed to all men. They are the wisest who will learn it soonest. Long
confused generations before it be learned; peace impossible till it be! The
earnest man, surrounded, as ever, with a world of inconsistencies, can await
patiently, patiently strive to do his work, in the midst of that. Sentence of
Death is written down in Heaven against all that; sentence of Death is now
proclaimed on the Earth against it: this he with his eyes may see. And surely,
I should say, considering the other side of the matter, what enormous
difficulties lie there, and how fast, fearfully fast, in all countries, the
inexorable demand for solution of them is pressing on, he may easily find
other work to do than laboring in the Sansculottic province at this time of
day! To me, in these circumstances, that of "Hero-worship" becomes a
fact inexpressibly precious; the most solacing fact one sees in the world at
present. There is an everlasting hope in it for the management of the world.
Had all traditions, arrangements, creeds, societies that men ever instituted,
sunk away, this would remain. The certainty of Heroes being sent us; our
faculty, our necessity, to reverence Heroes when sent: it shines like a
polestar through smoke-clouds, dust-clouds, and all manner of down-rushing and
conflagration. Hero-worship would have sounded very strange to those workers
and fighters in the French Revolution. Not reverence for Great Men; not any
hope or belief, or even wish, that Great Men could again appear in the world!
Nature, turned into a "Machine," was as if effete now; could not any
longer produce Great Men: I can tell her, she may give up the trade
altogether, then; we cannot do without Great Men! But neither have I any
quarrel with that of "Liberty and Equality;" with the faith that,
wise great men being impossible, a level immensity of foolish small men would
suffice. It was a natural faith then and there. "Liberty and Equality; no
Authority needed any longer. Hero-worship, reverence for such Authorities, has
proved false, is itself a falsehood; no more of it! We have had such forgeries,
we will now trust nothing. So many base plated coins passing in the market, the
belief has now become common that no gold any longer exists, and even that we
can do very well without gold!" I find this, among other things, in that
universal cry of Liberty and Equality; and find it very natural, as matters
then stood. And yet surely it is but the transition from false to true.
Considered as the whole truth, it is false altogether; the product of entire
sceptical blindness, as yet only struggling to see. Hero-worship exists
forever, and everywhere: not Loyalty alone; it extends from divine adoration
down to the lowest practical regions of life. "Bending before men,"
if it is not to be a mere empty grimace, better dispensed with than practiced,
is Hero-worship, a recognition that there does dwell in that presence of our
brother something divine; that every created man, as Novalis said, is a
"revelation in the Flesh." They were Poets too, that devised all
those graceful courtesies which make life noble! Courtesy is not a falsehood or
grimace; it need not be such. And Loyalty, religious Worship itself, are still
possible; nay still inevitable. May we not say, moreover, while so many of our
late Heroes have worked rather as revolutionary men, that nevertheless every
Great Man, every genuine man, is by the nature of him a son of Order, not of
Disorder? It is a tragical position for a true man to work in revolutions. He
seems an anarchist; and indeed a painful element of anarchy does encumber him
at every step, him to whose whole soul anarchy is hostile, hateful. His
mission is Order; every man's is. He is here to make what was disorderly,
chaotic, into a thing ruled, regular. He is the missionary of Order. Is not all
work of man in this world a making of Order? The carpenter finds rough trees;
shapes them, constrains them into square fitness, into purpose and use. We are
all born enemies of Disorder: it is tragical for us all to be concerned in
image-breaking and down-pulling; for the Great Man, more a man than we, it is
doubly tragical. Thus too all human things, maddest French Sansculottisms, do
and must work towards Order. I say, there is not a man in them, raging in the
thickest of the madness, but is impelled withal, at all moments, towards Order.
His very life means that; Disorder is dissolution, death. No chaos but it seeks
a centre to revolve round. While man is man, some Cromwell or Napoleon is the
necessary finish of a Sansculottism. Curious: in those days when Hero-worship
was the most incredible thing to every one, how it does come out nevertheless,
and assert itself practically, in a way which all have to credit. Divine right,
take it on the great scale, is found to mean divine might withal! While old
false Formulas are getting trampled everywhere into destruction, new genuine
Substances unexpectedly unfold themselves indestructible. In rebellious ages,
when Kingship itself seems dead and abolished, Cromwell, Napoleon step forth
again as Kings. The history of these men is what we have now to look at, as our
last phasis of Heroism. The old ages are brought back to us; the manner in
which Kings were made, and Kingship itself first took rise, is again exhibited
in the history of these Two.
We have had many civil wars in England; wars of Red
and White Roses, wars of Simon de Montfort; wars enough, which are not very
memorable. But that war of the Puritans has a significance which belongs to no
one of the others. Trusting to your candor, which will suggest on the other
side what I have not room to say, I will call it a section once more of that
great universal war which alone makes up the true History of the World, the
war of Belief against Unbelief! The struggle of men intent on the real essence
of things, against men intent on the semblances and forms of things. The
Puritans, to many, seem mere savage Iconoclasts, fierce destroyers of Forms;
but it were more just to call them haters of untrue Forms. I hope we know how
to respect Laud and his King as well as them. Poor Laud seems to me to have
been weak and ill-starred, not dishonest; an unfortunate Pedant rather than
anything worse. His "Dreams" and superstitions, at which they laugh so,
have an affectionate, lovable kind of character. He is like a College-Tutor,
whose whole world is forms, College-rules; whose notion is that these are the
life and safety of the world. He is placed suddenly, with that unalterable
luckless notion of his, at the head not of a College but of a Nation, to
regulate the most complex deep-reaching interests of men. He thinks they ought
to go by the old decent regulations; nay that their salvation will lie in
extending and improving these. Like a weak man, he drives with spasmodic
vehemence towards his purpose; cramps himself to it, heeding no voice of
prudence, no cry of pity: He will have his College-rules obeyed by his
Collegians; that first; and till that, nothing. He is an ill-starred Pedant, as
I said. He would have it the world was a College of that kind, and the world
was not that. Alas, was not his doom stern enough? Whatever wrongs he did, were
they not all frightfully avenged on him? It is meritorious to insist on forms;
Religion and all else naturally clothes itself in forms. Everywhere the formed
world is the only habitable one. The naked formlessness of Puritanism is not
the thing I praise in the Puritans; it is the thing I pity, praising only the
spirit which had rendered that inevitable! All substances clothe themselves in
forms: but there are suitable true forms, and then there are untrue unsuitable.
As the briefest definition, one might say, Forms which grow round a substance,
if we rightly understand that, will correspond to the real nature and purport of
it, will be true, good; forms which are consciously put round a substance, bad.
I invite you to reflect on this. It distinguishes true from false in Ceremonial
Form, earnest solemnity from empty pageant, in all human things. There must be
a veracity, a natural spontaneity in forms. In the commonest meeting of men, a
person making, what we call, "set speeches," is not he an offence? In
the mere drawing-room, whatsoever courtesies you see to be grimaces, prompted
by no spontaneous reality within, are a thing you wish to get away from. But
suppose now it were some matter of vital concernment, some transcendent matter
(as Divine Worship is), about which your whole soul, struck dumb with its
excess of feeling, knew not how to form itself into utterance at all, and
preferred formless silence to any utterance there possible, what should we
say of a man coming forward to represent or utter it for you in the way of
upholsterer-mummery? Such a man, let him depart swiftly, if he love himself!
You have lost your only son; are mute, struck down, without even tears: an
importunate man importunately offers to celebrate Funeral Games for him in the
manner of the Greeks! Such mummery is not only not to be accepted, it is
hateful, unendurable. It is what the old Prophets called "Idolatry,"
worshipping of hollow shows; what all earnest men do and will reject. We can
partly understand what those poor Puritans meant. Laud dedicating that St.
Catherine Creed's Church, in the manner we have it described; with his multiplied
ceremonial bowings, gesticulations, exclamations: surely it is rather the
rigorous formal Pedant, intent on his "College-rules," than the
earnest Prophet intent on the essence of the matter! Puritanism found such
forms insupportable; trampled on such forms; we have to excuse it for saying,
No form at all rather than such! It stood preaching in its bare pulpit, with
nothing but the Bible in its hand. Nay, a man preaching from his earnest soul
into the earnest souls of men: is not this virtually the essence of all
Churches whatsoever? The nakedest, savagest reality, I say, is preferable to
any semblance, however dignified. Besides, it will clothe itself with due
semblance by and by, if it be real. No fear of that; actually no fear at all.
Given the living man, there will be found clothes for him; he will find himself
clothes. But the suit-of-clothes pretending that it is both clothes and man!
We cannot "fight the French" by three hundred thousand red uniforms;
there must be men in the inside of them! Semblance, I assert, must actually not
divorce itself from Reality. If Semblance do, why then there must be men
found to rebel against Semblance, for it has become a lie! These two
Antagonisms at war here, in the case of Laud and the Puritans, are as old
nearly as the world. They went to fierce battle over England in that age; and
fought out their confused controversy to a certain length, with many results
for all of us.
In the age which directly followed that of the
Puritans, their cause or themselves were little likely to have justice done
them. Charles Second and his Rochesters were not the kind of men you would set
to judge what the worth or meaning of such men might have been. That there
could be any faith or truth in the life of a man, was what these poor Rochesters,
and the age they ushered in, had forgotten. Puritanism was hung on gibbets,
like the bones of the leading Puritans. Its work nevertheless went on
accomplishing itself. All true work of a man, hang the author of it on what
gibbet you like, must and will accomplish itself. We have our Habeas-Corpus,
our free Representation of the People; acknowledgment, wide as the world, that
all men are, or else must, shall, and will become, what we call free men; men
with their life grounded on reality and justice, not on tradition, which has
become unjust and a chimera! This in part, and much besides this, was the work
of the Puritans. And indeed, as these things became gradually manifest, the
character of the Puritans began to clear itself. Their memories were, one after
another, taken down from the gibbet; nay a certain portion of them are now, in
these days, as good as canonized. Eliot, Hampden, Pym, nay Ludlow, Hutchinson,
Vane himself, are admitted to be a kind of Heroes; political Conscript Fathers,
to whom in no small degree we owe what makes us a free England: it would not be
safe for anybody to designate these men as wicked now. Few Puritans of note but
find their apologists somewhere, and have a certain reverence paid them by
earnest men. One Puritan, I think, and almost he alone, our poor Cromwell,
seems to hang yet on the gibbet, and find no hearty apologist anywhere. Him
neither saint nor sinner will acquit of great wickedness. A man of ability,
infinite talent, courage, and so forth: but he betrayed the Cause. Selfish
ambition, dishonesty, duplicity; a fierce, coarse, hypocritical Tartuffe;
turning all that noble Struggle for constitutional Liberty into a sorry farce
played for his own benefit: this and worse is the character they give of
Cromwell. And then there come contrasts with Washington and others; above all,
with these noble Pyms and Hampdens, whose noble work he stole for himself, and
ruined into a futility and deformity. This view of Cromwell seems to me the not
unnatural product of a century like the Eighteenth. As we said of the Valet, so
of the Sceptic: He does not know a Hero when he sees him! The Valet expected
purple mantles, gilt sceptres, bodyguards and flourishes of trumpets: the
Sceptic of the Eighteenth century looks for regulated respectable Formulas,
"Principles," or what else he may call them; a style of speech and
conduct which has got to seem "respectable," which can plead for
itself in a handsome articulate manner, and gain the suffrages of an enlightened
sceptical Eighteenth century! It is, at bottom, the same thing that both the
Valet and he expect: the garnitures of some acknowledged royalty, which then
they will acknowledge! The King coming to them in the rugged unformulistic
state shall be no King. For my own share, far be it from me to say or insinuate
a word of disparagement against such characters as Hampden, Elliot, Pym; whom I
believe to have been right worthy and useful men. I have read diligently what
books and documents about them I could come at; with the honestest wish to
admire, to love and worship them like Heroes; but I am sorry to say, if the
real truth must be told, with very indifferent success! At bottom, I found that
it would not do. They are very noble men, these; step along in their stately
way, with their measured euphemisms, philosophies, parliamentary eloquences,
Ship-moneys, Monarchies of Man; a most constitutional, unblamable, dignified
set of men. But the heart remains cold before them; the fancy alone endeavors
to get up some worship of them. What man's heart does, in reality, break forth
into any fire of brotherly love for these men? They are become dreadfully dull
men! One breaks down often enough in the constitutional eloquence of the
admirable Pym, with his "seventhly and lastly." You find that it may
be the admirablest thing in the world, but that it is heavy, heavy as lead,
barren as brick-clay; that, in a word, for you there is little or nothing now
surviving there! One leaves all these Nobilities standing in their niches of
honor: the rugged outcast Cromwell, he is the man of them all in whom one still
finds human stuff. The great savage Baresark: he could write no euphemistic
Monarchy of Man; did not speak, did not work with glib regularity; had no
straight story to tell for himself anywhere. But he stood bare, not cased in
euphemistic coat-of-mail; he grappled like a giant, face to face, heart to
heart, with the naked truth of things! That, after all, is the sort of man for
one. I plead guilty to valuing such a man beyond all other sorts of men.
Smooth-shaven Respectabilities not a few one finds, that are not good for much.
Small thanks to a man for keeping his hands clean, who would not touch the work
but with gloves on! Neither, on the whole, does this constitutional tolerance
of the Eighteenth century for the other happier Puritans seem to be a very
great matter. One might say, it is but a piece of Formulism and Scepticism,
like the rest. They tell us, It was a sorrowful thing to consider that the
foundation of our English Liberties should have been laid by
"Superstition." These Puritans came forward with Calvinistic
incredible Creeds, Anti-Laudisms, Westminster Confessions; demanding, chiefly
of all, that they should have liberty to worship in their own way. Liberty to
tax themselves: that was the thing they should have demanded! It was
Superstition, Fanaticism, disgraceful ignorance of Constitutional Philosophy to
insist on the other thing! Liberty to tax oneself? Not to pay out money from
your pocket except on reason shown? No century, I think, but a rather barren
one would have fixed on that as the first right of man! I should say, on the
contrary, A just man will generally have better cause than money in what shape
soever, before deciding to revolt against his Government. Ours is a most
confused world; in which a good man will be thankful to see any kind of
Government maintain itself in a not insupportable manner: and here in England,
to this hour, if he is not ready to pay a great many taxes which he can see
very small reason in, it will not go well with him, I think! He must try some
other climate than this. Tax-gatherer? Money? He will say: "Take my money,
since you can, and it is so desirable to you; take it, and take yourself away
with it; and leave me alone to my work here. I am still here; can still work,
after all the money you have taken from me!" But if they come to him, and
say, "Acknowledge a Lie; pretend to say you are worshipping God, when you
are not doing it: believe not the thing that you find true, but the thing that
I find, or pretend to find true!" He will answer: "No; by God's help,
no! You may take my purse; but I cannot have my moral Self annihilated. The
purse is any Highwayman's who might meet me with a loaded pistol: but the Self
is mine and God my Maker's; it is not yours; and I will resist you to the
death, and revolt against you, and, on the whole, front all manner of
extremities, accusations and confusions, in defence of that!" Really, it
seems to me the one reason which could justify revolting, this of the Puritans.
It has been the soul of all just revolts among men. Not Hunger alone produced
even the French Revolution; no, but the feeling of the insupportable
all-pervading Falsehood which had now embodied itself in Hunger, in universal
material Scarcity and Nonentity, and thereby become indisputably false in the
eyes of all! We will leave the Eighteenth century with its "liberty to tax
itself." We will not astonish ourselves that the meaning of such men as
the Puritans remained dim to it. To men who believe in no reality at all, how
shall a real human soul, the intensest of all realities, as it were the Voice
of this world's Maker still speaking to us, be intelligible? What it cannot
reduce into constitutional doctrines relative to "taxing," or other
the like material interest, gross, palpable to the sense, such a century will
needs reject as an amorphous heap of rubbish. Hampdens, Pyms and Ship-money
will be the theme of much constitutional eloquence, striving to be fervid;
which will glitter, if not as fire does, then as ice does: and the irreducible
Cromwell will remain a chaotic mass of "madness,"
"hypocrisy," and much else.
From of old, I will confess, this theory of Cromwell's
falsity has been incredible to me. Nay I cannot believe the like, of any Great
Man whatever. Multitudes of Great Men figure in History as false selfish men;
but if we will consider it, they are but figures for us, unintelligible
shadows; we do not see into them as men that could have existed at all. A
superficial unbelieving generation only, with no eye but for the surfaces and
semblances of things, could form such notions of Great Men. Can a great soul be
possible without a conscience in it, the essence of all real souls, great or
small? No, we cannot figure Cromwell as a Falsity and Fatuity; the longer I
study him and his career, I believe this the less. Why should we? There is no
evidence of it. Is it not strange that, after all the mountains of calumny this
man has been subject to, after being represented as the very prince of liars,
who never, or hardly ever, spoke truth, but always some cunning counterfeit of
truth, there should not yet have been one falsehood brought clearly home to
him? A prince of liars, and no lie spoken by him. Not one that I could yet get
sight of. It is like Pococke asking Grotius, Where is your proof of Mahomet's
Pigeon? No proof! Let us leave all these calumnious chimeras, as chimeras
ought to be left. They are not portraits of the man; they are distracted
phantasms of him, the joint product of hatred and darkness. Looking at the
man's life with our own eyes, it seems to me, a very different hypothesis
suggests itself. What little we know of his earlier obscure years, distorted as
it has come down to us, does it not all betoken an earnest, affectionate,
sincere kind of man? His nervous melancholic temperament indicates rather a
seriousness too deep for him. Of those stories of "Spectres;" of the
white Spectre in broad daylight, predicting that he should be King of England,
we are not bound to believe much; probably no more than of the other black
Spectre, or Devil in person, to whom the Officer saw him sell himself before
Worcester Fight! But the mournful, oversensitive, hypochondriac humor of
Oliver, in his young years, is otherwise indisputably known. The Huntingdon
Physician told Sir Philip Warwick himself, He had often been sent for at
midnight; Mr. Cromwell was full of hypochondria, thought himself near dying,
and "had fancies about the Town-cross." These things are significant.
Such an excitable deep-feeling nature, in that rugged stubborn strength of his,
is not the symptom of falsehood; it is the symptom and promise of quite other
than falsehood! The young Oliver is sent to study Law; falls, or is said to
have fallen, for a little period, into some of the dissipations of youth; but
if so, speedily repents, abandons all this: not much above twenty, he is
married, settled as an altogether grave and quiet man. "He pays back what
money he had won at gambling," says the story; he does not think any
gain of that kind could be really his. It is very interesting, very natural,
this "conversion," as they well name it; this awakening of a great
true soul from the worldly slough, to see into the awful truth of things; to
see that Time and its shows all rested on Eternity, and this poor Earth of ours
was the threshold either of Heaven or of Hell! Oliver's life at St. Ives and
Ely, as a sober industrious Farmer, is it not altogether as that of a true and
devout man? He has renounced the world and its ways; its prizes are not the
thing that can enrich him. He tills the earth; he reads his Bible; daily
assembles his servants round him to worship God. He comforts persecuted
ministers, is fond of preachers; nay can himself preach, exhorts his
neighbors to be wise, to redeem the time. In all this what
"hypocrisy," "ambition," "cant," or other
falsity? The man's hopes, I do believe, were fixed on the other Higher World;
his aim to get well thither, by walking well through his humble course in this
world. He courts no notice: what could notice here do for him? "Ever in
his great Taskmaster's eye." It is striking, too, how he comes out once
into public view; he, since no other is willing to come: in resistance to a
public grievance. I mean, in that matter of the Bedford Fens. No one else will
go to law with Authority; therefore he will. That matter once settled, he
returns back into obscurity, to his Bible and his Plough. "Gain
influence"? His influence is the most legitimate; derived from personal knowledge
of him, as a just, religious, reasonable and determined man. In this way he has
lived till past forty; old age is now in view of him, and the earnest portal of
Death and Eternity; it was at this point that he suddenly became
"ambitious"! I do not interpret his Parliamentary mission in that
way! His successes in Parliament, his successes through the war, are honest
successes of a brave man; who has more resolution in the heart of him, more
light in the head of him than other men. His prayers to God; his spoken thanks
to the God of Victory, who had preserved him safe, and carried him forward so
far, through the furious clash of a world all set in conflict, through
desperate-looking envelopments at Dunbar; through the death-hail of so many
battles; mercy after mercy; to the "crowning mercy" of Worcester
Fight: all this is good and genuine for a deep-hearted Calvinistic Cromwell.
Only to vain unbelieving Cavaliers, worshipping not God but their own
"love-locks," frivolities and formalities, living quite apart from contemplations
of God, living without God in the world, need it seem hypocritical. Nor will
his participation in the King's death involve him in condemnation with us. It
is a stern business killing of a King! But if you once go to war with him, it
lies there; this and all else lies there. Once at war, you have made wager of
battle with him: it is he to die, or else you. Reconciliation is problematic;
may be possible, or, far more likely, is impossible. It is now pretty generally
admitted that the Parliament, having vanquished Charles First, had no way of
making any tenable arrangement with him. The large Presbyterian party,
apprehensive now of the Independents, were most anxious to do so; anxious
indeed as for their own existence; but it could not be. The unhappy Charles, in
those final Hampton-Court negotiations, shows himself as a man fatally
incapable of being dealt with. A man who, once for all, could not and would not
understand: whose thought did not in any measure represent to him the real
fact of the matter; nay worse, whose word did not at all represent his thought.
We may say this of him without cruelty, with deep pity rather: but it is true
and undeniable. Forsaken there of all but the name of Kingship, he still,
finding himself treated with outward respect as a King, fancied that he might
play off party against party, and smuggle himself into his old power by
deceiving both. Alas, they both discovered that he was deceiving them. A man
whose word will not inform you at all what he means or will do, is not a man
you can bargain with. You must get out of that man's way, or put him out of
yours! The Presbyterians, in their despair, were still for believing Charles,
though found false, unbelievable again and again. Not so Cromwell: "For
all our fighting," says he, "we are to have a little bit of
paper?" No! In fact, everywhere we have to note the decisive practical
eye of this man; how he drives towards the practical and practicable; has a
genuine insight into what is fact. Such an intellect, I maintain, does not
belong to a false man: the false man sees false shows, plausibilities,
expediences: the true man is needed to discern even practical truth. Cromwell's
advice about the Parliament's Army, early in the contest, How they were to
dismiss their city-tapsters, flimsy riotous persons, and choose substantial
yeomen, whose heart was in the work, to be soldiers for them: this is advice by
a man who saw. Fact answers, if you see into Fact! Cromwell's Ironsides were
the embodiment of this insight of his; men fearing God; and without any other
fear. No more conclusively genuine set of fighters ever trod the soil of
England, or of any other land. Neither will we blame greatly that word of
Cromwell's to them; which was so blamed: "If the King should meet me in battle,
I would kill the King." Why not? These words were spoken to men who stood
as before a Higher than Kings. They had set more than their own lives on the
cast. The Parliament may call it, in official language, a fighting "for
the King;" but we, for our share, cannot understand that. To us it is no
dilettante work, no sleek officiality; it is sheer rough death and earnest.
They have brought it to the calling-forth of War; horrid internecine fight, man
grappling with man in fire-eyed rage, the infernal element in man called
forth, to try it by that! Do that therefore; since that is the thing to be
done. The successes of Cromwell seem to me a very natural thing! Since he was
not shot in battle, they were an inevitable thing. That such a man, with the eye
to see, with the heart to dare, should advance, from post to post, from victory
to victory, till the Huntingdon Farmer became, by whatever name you might call
him, the acknowledged Strongest Man in England, virtually the King of England,
requires no magic to explain it! Truly it is a sad thing for a people, as for
a man, to fall into Scepticism, into dilettantism, insincerity; not to know
Sincerity when they see it. For this world, and for all worlds, what curse is
so fatal? The heart lying dead, the eye cannot see. What intellect remains is
merely the vulpine intellect. That a true King be sent them is of small use;
they do not know him when sent. They say scornfully, Is this your King? The
Hero wastes his heroic faculty in bootless contradiction from the unworthy; and
can accomplish little. For himself he does accomplish a heroic life, which is
much, which is all; but for the world he accomplishes comparatively nothing.
The wild rude Sincerity, direct from Nature, is not glib in answering from the
witness-box: in your small-debt pie-powder court, he is scouted as a
counterfeit. The vulpine intellect "detects" him. For being a man
worth any thousand men, the response your Knox, your Cromwell gets, is an
argument for two centuries whether he was a man at all. God's greatest gift to
this Earth is sneeringly flung away. The miraculous talisman is a paltry plated
coin, not fit to pass in the shops as a common guinea. Lamentable this! I say,
this must be remedied. Till this be remedied in some measure, there is nothing
remedied. "Detect quacks"? Yes do, for Heaven's sake; but know withal
the men that are to be trusted! Till we know that, what is all our knowledge;
how shall we even so much as "detect"? For the vulpine sharpness,
which considers itself to be knowledge, and "detects" in that
fashion, is far mistaken. Dupes indeed are many: but, of all dupes, there is
none so fatally situated as he who lives in undue terror of being duped. The
world does exist; the world has truth in it, or it would not exist! First
recognize what is true, we shall then discern what is false; and properly never
till then. "Know the men that are to be trusted:" alas, this is yet,
in these days, very far from us. The sincere alone can recognize sincerity. Not
a Hero only is needed, but a world fit for him; a world not of Valets; the
Hero comes almost in vain to it otherwise! Yes, it is far from us: but it must
come; thank God, it is visibly coming. Till it do come, what have we?
Ballot-boxes, suffrages, French Revolutions: if we are as Valets, and do not
know the Hero when we see him, what good are all these? A heroic Cromwell
comes; and for a hundred and fifty years he cannot have a vote from us. Why,
the insincere, unbelieving world is the natural property of the Quack, and of the
Father of quacks and quackeries! Misery, confusion, unveracity are alone
possible there. By ballot-boxes we alter the figure of our Quack; but the
substance of him continues. The Valet-World has to be governed by the
Sham-Hero, by the King merely dressed in King-gear. It is his; he is its! In
brief, one of two things: We shall either learn to know a Hero, a true Governor
and Captain, somewhat better, when we see him; or else go on to be forever
governed by the Unheroic; had we ballot-boxes clattering at every
street-corner, there were no remedy in these. Poor Cromwell, great Cromwell!
The inarticulate Prophet; Prophet who could not speak. Rude, confused,
struggling to utter himself, with his savage depth, with his wild sincerity;
and he looked so strange, among the elegant Euphemisms, dainty little
Falklands, didactic Chillingworths, diplomatic Clarendons! Consider him. An
outer hull of chaotic confusion, visions of the Devil, nervous dreams, almost
semi-madness; and yet such a clear determinate man's-energy working in the
heart of that. A kind of chaotic man. The ray as of pure starlight and fire,
working in such an element of boundless hypochondria, unformed black of
darkness! And yet withal this hypochondria, what was it but the very greatness
of the man? The depth and tenderness of his wild affections: the quantity of
sympathy he had with things, the quantity of insight he would yet get into
the heart of things, the mastery he would yet get over things: this was his
hypochondria. The man's misery, as man's misery always does, came of his
greatness. Samuel Johnson too is that kind of man. Sorrow-stricken,
half-distracted; the wide element of mournful black enveloping him, wide as
the world. It is the character of a prophetic man; a man with his whole soul
seeing, and struggling to see. On this ground, too, I explain to myself
Cromwell's reputed confusion of speech. To himself the internal meaning was
sun-clear; but the material with which he was to clothe it in utterance was not
there. He had lived silent; a great unnamed sea of Thought round him all his
days; and in his way of life little call to attempt naming or uttering that.
With his sharp power of vision, resolute power of action, I doubt not he could
have learned to write Books withal, and speak fluently enough; he did harder
things than writing of Books. This kind of man is precisely he who is fit for
doing manfully all things you will set him on doing. Intellect is not speaking
and logicizing; it is seeing and ascertaining. Virtue, Virtues, manhood,
herohood, is not fair-spoken immaculate regularity; it is first of all, what
the Germans well name it, Tugend (Taugend, dow-ing or Dough-tinesS), Courage
and the Faculty to do. This basis of the matter Cromwell had in him. One
understands moreover how, though he could not speak in Parliament, he might
preach, rhapsodic preaching; above all, how he might be great in extempore
prayer. These are the free outpouring utterances of what is in the heart:
method is not required in them; warmth, depth, sincerity are all that is
required. Cromwell's habit of prayer is a notable feature of him. All his great
enterprises were commenced with prayer. In dark inextricable-looking
difficulties, his Officers and he used to assemble, and pray alternately, for
hours, for days, till some definite resolution rose among them, some "door
of hope," as they would name it, disclosed itself. Consider that. In
tears, in fervent prayers, and cries to the great God, to have pity on them, to
make His light shine before them. They, armed Soldiers of Christ, as they felt
themselves to be; a little band of Christian Brothers, who had drawn the sword
against a great black devouring world not Christian, but Mammonish, Devilish,
they cried to God in their straits, in their extreme need, not to forsake the
Cause that was His. The light which now rose upon them, how could a human
soul, by any means at all, get better light? Was not the purpose so formed like
to be precisely the best, wisest, the one to be followed without hesitation any
more? To them it was as the shining of Heaven's own Splendor in the
waste-howling darkness; the Pillar of Fire by night, that was to guide them on
their desolate perilous way. Was it not such? Can a man's soul, to this hour,
get guidance by any other method than intrinsically by that same, devout
prostration of the earnest struggling soul before the Highest, the Giver of all
Light; be such prayer a spoken, articulate, or be it a voiceless, inarticulate
one? There is no other method. "Hypocrisy"? One begins to be weary of
all that. They who call it so, have no right to speak on such matters. They
never formed a purpose, what one can call a purpose. They went about balancing
expediencies, plausibilities; gathering votes, advices; they never were alone
with the truth of a thing at all. Cromwell's prayers were likely to be
"eloquent," and much more than that. His was the heart of a man who
could pray. But indeed his actual Speeches, I apprehend, were not nearly so
ineloquent, incondite, as they look. We find he was, what all speakers aim to
be, an impressive speaker, even in Parliament; one who, from the first, had
weight. With that rude passionate voice of his, he was always understood to
mean something, and men wished to know what. He disregarded eloquence, nay
despised and disliked it; spoke always without premeditation of the words he
was to use. The Reporters, too, in those days seem to have been singularly
candid; and to have given the Printer precisely what they found on their own
note-paper. And withal, what a strange proof is it of Cromwell's being the
premeditative ever-calculating hypocrite, acting a play before the world, That
to the last he took no more charge of his Speeches! How came he not to study
his words a little, before flinging them out to the public? If the words were
true words, they could be left to shift for themselves. But with regard to
Cromwell's "lying," we will make one remark. This, I suppose, or
something like this, to have been the nature of it. All parties found themselves
deceived in him; each party understood him to be meaning this, heard him even
say so, and behold he turns out to have been meaning that! He was, cry they,
the chief of liars. But now, intrinsically, is not all this the inevitable
fortune, not of a false man in such times, but simply of a superior man? Such a
man must have reticences in him. If he walk wearing his heart upon his sleeve
for daws to peck at, his journey will not extend far! There is no use for any
man's taking up his abode in a house built of glass. A man always is to be
himself the judge how much of his mind he will show to other men; even to those
he would have work along with him. There are impertinent inquiries made: your
rule is, to leave the inquirer uninformed on that matter; not, if you can help
it, misinformed, but precisely as dark as he was! This, could one hit the right
phrase of response, is what the wise and faithful man would aim to answer in
such a case. Cromwell, no doubt of it, spoke often in the dialect of small
subaltern parties; uttered to them a part of his mind. Each little party
thought him all its own. Hence their rage, one and all, to find him not of
their party, but of his own party. Was it his blame? At all seasons of his
history he must have felt, among such people, how, if he explained to them the
deeper insight he had, they must either have shuddered aghast at it, or
believing it, their own little compact hypothesis must have gone wholly to
wreck. They could not have worked in his province any more; nay perhaps they
could not now have worked in their own province. It is the inevitable position
of a great man among small men. Small men, most active, useful, are to be seen
everywhere, whose whole activity depends on some conviction which to you is
palpably a limited one; imperfect, what we call an error. But would it be a
kindness always, is it a duty always or often, to disturb them in that? Many a
man, doing loud work in the world, stands only on some thin traditionality,
conventionality; to him indubitable, to you incredible: break that beneath him,
he sinks to endless depths! "I might have my hand full of truth,"
said Fontenelle, "and open only my little finger." And if this be the
fact even in matters of doctrine, how much more in all departments of practice!
He that cannot withal keep his mind to himself cannot practice any considerable
thing whatever. And we call it "dissimulation," all this? What would
you think of calling the general of an army a dissembler because he did not
tell every corporal and private soldier, who pleased to put the question, what
his thoughts were about everything? Cromwell, I should rather say, managed all
this in a manner we must admire for its perfection. An endless vortex of such
questioning "corporals" rolled confusedly round him through his whole
course; whom he did answer. It must have been as a great true-seeing man that
he managed this too. Not one proved falsehood, as I said; not one! Of what man
that ever wound himself through such a coil of things will you say so much?
But in fact there are two errors, widely prevalent, which pervert to the very
basis our judgments formed about such men as Cromwell; about their
"ambition," "falsity," and such like. The first is what I
might call substituting the goal of their career for the course and
starting-point of it. The vulgar Historian of a Cromwell fancies that he had
determined on being Protector of England, at the time when he was ploughing the
marsh lands of Cambridgeshire. His career lay all mapped out: a program of the
whole drama; which he then step by step dramatically unfolded, with all manner
of cunning, deceptive dramaturgy, as he went on, the hollow, scheming [Gr.]
Upokrites, or Play-actor, that he was! This is a radical perversion; all but
universal in such cases. And think for an instant how different the fact is!
How much does one of us foresee of his own life? Short way ahead of us it is
all dim; an unwound skein of possibilities, of apprehensions, attemptabilities,
vague-looming hopes. This Cromwell had not his life lying all in that fashion
of Program, which he needed then, with that unfathomable cunning of his, only
to enact dramatically, scene after scene! Not so. We see it so; but to him it
was in no measure so. What absurdities would fall away of themselves, were this
one undeniable fact kept honestly in view by History! Historians indeed will
tell you that they do keep it in view; but look whether such is practically
the fact! Vulgar History, as in this Cromwell's case, omits it altogether; even
the best kinds of History only remember it now and then. To remember it duly
with rigorous perfection, as in the fact it stood, requires indeed a rare
faculty; rare, nay impossible. A very Shakspeare for faculty; or more than
Shakspeare; who could enact a brother man's biography, see with the brother
man's eyes at all points of his course what things he saw; in short, know his
course and him, as few "Historians" are like to do. Half or more of
all the thick-plied perversions which distort our image of Cromwell, will disappear,
if we honestly so much as try to represent them so; in sequence, as they were;
not in the lump, as they are thrown down before us. But a second error, which I
think the generality commit, refers to this same "ambition" itself.
We exaggerate the ambition of Great Men; we mistake what the nature of it is.
Great Men are not ambitious in that sense; he is a small poor man that is
ambitious so. Examine the man who lives in misery because he does not shine
above other men; who goes about producing himself, pruriently anxious about his
gifts and claims; struggling to force everybody, as it were begging everybody
for God's sake, to acknowledge him a great man, and set him over the heads of
men! Such a creature is among the wretchedest sights seen under this sun. A
great man? A poor morbid prurient empty man; fitter for the ward of a hospital,
than for a throne among men. I advise you to keep out of his way. He cannot
walk on quiet paths; unless you will look at him, wonder at him, write
paragraphs about him, he cannot live. It is the emptiness of the man, not his
greatness. Because there is nothing in himself, he hungers and thirsts that you
would find something in him. In good truth, I believe no great man, not so much
as a genuine man who had health and real substance in him of whatever
magnitude, was ever much tormented in this way. Your Cromwell, what good could
it do him to be "noticed" by noisy crowds of people? God his Maker
already noticed him. He, Cromwell, was already there; no notice would make him
other than he already was. Till his hair was grown gray; and Life from the
down-hill slope was all seen to be limited, not infinite but finite, and all a
measurable matter how it went, he had been content to plough the ground, and
read his Bible. He in his old days could not support it any longer, without
selling himself to Falsehood, that he might ride in gilt carriages to
Whitehall, and have clerks with bundles of papers haunting him, "Decide
this, decide that," which in utmost sorrow of heart no man can perfectly
decide! What could gilt carriages do for this man? From of old, was there not
in his life a weight of meaning, a terror and a splendor as of Heaven itself?
His existence there as man set him beyond the need of gilding. Death, Judgment
and Eternity: these already lay as the background of whatsoever he thought or
did. All his life lay begirt as in a sea of nameless Thoughts, which no speech
of a mortal could name. God's Word, as the Puritan prophets of that time had
read it: this was great, and all else was little to him. To call such a man
"ambitious," to figure him as the prurient wind-bag described above,
seems to me the poorest solecism. Such a man will say: "Keep your gilt
carriages and huzzaing mobs, keep your red-tape clerks, your influentialities,
your important businesses. Leave me alone, leave me alone; there is too much of
life in me already!" Old Samuel Johnson, the greatest soul in England in
his day, was not ambitious. "Corsica Boswell" flaunted at public
shows with printed ribbons round his hat; but the great old Samuel stayed at
home. The world-wide soul wrapt up in its thoughts, in its sorrows; what
could paradings, and ribbons in the hat, do for it? Ah yes, I will say again:
The great silent men! Looking round on the noisy inanity of the world, words
with little meaning, actions with little worth, one loves to reflect on the
great Empire of Silence. The noble silent men, scattered here and there, each
in his department; silently thinking, silently working; whom no Morning
Newspaper makes mention of! They are the salt of the Earth. A country that has
none or few of these is in a bad way. Like a forest which had no roots; which
had all turned into leaves and boughs; which must soon wither and be no
forest. Woe for us if we had nothing but what we can show, or speak. Silence,
the great Empire of Silence: higher than the stars; deeper than the Kingdoms of
Death! It alone is great; all else is small. I hope we English will long
maintain our grand talent pour le silence. Let others that cannot do without
standing on barrel-heads, to spout, and be seen of all the market-place,
cultivate speech exclusively, become a most green forest without roots!
Solomon says, There is a time to speak; but also a time to keep silence. Of
some great silent Samuel, not urged to writing, as old Samuel Johnson says he
was, by want of money, and nothing other, one might ask, "Why do not you
too get up and speak; promulgate your system, found your sect?"
"Truly," he will answer, "I am continent of my thought hitherto;
happily I have yet had the ability to keep it in me, no compulsion strong
enough to speak it. My 'system' is not for promulgation first of all; it is for
serving myself to live by. That is the great purpose of it to me. And then the
'honor'? Alas, yes; but as Cato said of the statue: So many statues in that
Forum of yours, may it not be better if they ask, Where is Cato's statue?"
But now, by way of counterpoise to this of Silence, let me say that there are
two kinds of ambition; one wholly blamable, the other laudable and inevitable.
Nature has provided that the great silent Samuel shall not be silent too long.
The selfish wish to shine over others, let it be accounted altogether poor and
miserable. "Seekest thou great things, seek them not:" this is most true.
And yet, I say, there is an irrepressible tendency in every man to develop
himself according to the magnitude which Nature has made him of; to speak out,
to act out, what nature has laid in him. This is proper, fit, inevitable; nay
it is a duty, and even the summary of duties for a man. The meaning of life
here on earth might be defined as consisting in this: To unfold your self, to
work what thing you have the faculty for. It is a necessity for the human
being, the first law of our existence. Coleridge beautifully remarks that the
infant learns to speak by this necessity it feels. We will say therefore: To
decide about ambition, whether it is bad or not, you have two things to take
into view. Not the coveting of the place alone, but the fitness of the man for
the place withal: that is the question. Perhaps the place was his; perhaps he
had a natural right, and even obligation, to seek the place! Mirabeau's
ambition to be Prime Minister, how shall we blame it, if he were "the only
man in France that could have done any good there"? Hopefuler perhaps had
he not so clearly felt how much good he could do! But a poor Necker, who could
do no good, and had even felt that he could do none, yet sitting broken-hearted
because they had flung him out, and he was now quit of it, well might Gibbon
mourn over him. Nature, I say, has provided amply that the silent great man
shall strive to speak withal; too amply, rather! Fancy, for example, you had
revealed to the brave old Samuel Johnson, in his shrouded-up existence, that it
was possible for him to do priceless divine work for his country and the whole
world. That the perfect Heavenly Law might be made Law on this Earth; that the
prayer he prayed daily, "Thy kingdom come," was at length to be
fulfilled! If you had convinced his judgment of this; that it was possible,
practicable; that he the mournful silent Samuel was called to take a part in
it! Would not the whole soul of the man have flamed up into a divine clearness,
into noble utterance and determination to act; casting all sorrows and
misgivings under his feet, counting all affliction and contradiction small,
the whole dark element of his existence blazing into articulate radiance of
light and lightning? It were a true ambition this! And think now how it actually
was with Cromwell. From of old, the sufferings of God's Church, true zealous
Preachers of the truth flung into dungeons, whips, set on pillories, their ears
crops off, God's Gospel-cause trodden under foot of the unworthy: all this had
lain heavy on his soul. Long years he had looked upon it, in silence, in
prayer; seeing no remedy on Earth; trusting well that a remedy in Heaven's
goodness would come, that such a course was false, unjust, and could not last
forever. And now behold the dawn of it; after twelve years silent waiting, all
England stirs itself; there is to be once more a Parliament, the Right will get
a voice for itself: inexpressible well-grounded hope has come again into the
Earth. Was not such a Parliament worth being a member of? Cromwell threw down
his ploughs, and hastened thither. He spoke there, rugged bursts of
earnestness, of a self-seen truth, where we get a glimpse of them. He worked
there; he fought and strove, like a strong true giant of a man, through
cannon-tumult and all else, on and on, till the Cause triumphed, its once so
formidable enemies all swept from before it, and the dawn of hope had become
clear light of victory and certainty. That he stood there as the strongest soul
of England, the undisputed Hero of all England, what of this? It was possible
that the Law of Christ's Gospel could now establish itself in the world! The
Theocracy which John Knox in his pulpit might dream of as a "devout
imagination," this practical man, experienced in the whole chaos of most
rough practice, dared to consider as capable of being realized. Those that were
highest in Christ's Church, the devoutest wisest men, were to rule the land: in
some considerable degree, it might be so and should be so. Was it not true,
God's truth? And if true, was it not then the very thing to do? The strongest
practical intellect in England dared to answer, Yes! This I call a noble true
purpose; is it not, in its own dialect, the noblest that could enter into the
heart of Statesman or man? For a Knox to take it up was something; but for a
Cromwell, with his great sound sense and experience of what our world was,
History, I think, shows it only this once in such a degree. I account it the
culminating point of Protestantism; the most heroic phasis that "Faith in
the Bible" was appointed to exhibit here below. Fancy it: that it were
made manifest to one of us, how we could make the Right supremely victorious
over Wrong, and all that we had longed and prayed for, as the highest good to
England and all lands, an attainable fact! Well, I must say, the vulpine
intellect, with its knowingness, its alertness and expertness in
"detecting hypocrites," seems to me a rather sorry business. We have
had but one such Statesman in England; one man, that I can get sight of, who
ever had in the heart of him any such purpose at all. One man, in the course of
fifteen hundred years; and this was his welcome. He had adherents by the
hundred or the ten; opponents by the million. Had England rallied all round
him, why, then, England might have been a Christian land! As it is, vulpine
knowingness sits yet at its hopeless problem, "Given a world of Knaves, to
educe an Honesty from their united action;" how cumbrous a problem, you
may see in Chancery Law-Courts, and some other places! Till at length, by
Heaven's just anger, but also by Heaven's great grace, the matter begins to
stagnate; and this problem is becoming to all men a palpably hopeless one.
But with regard to Cromwell and his purposes: Hume, and a multitude following him,
come upon me here with an admission that Cromwell was sincere at first; a
sincere "Fanatic" at first, but gradually became a
"Hypocrite" as things opened round him. This of the Fanatic-Hypocrite
is Hume's theory of it; extensively applied since, to Mahomet and many
others. Think of it seriously, you will find something in it; not much, not
all, very far from all. Sincere hero hearts do not sink in this miserable
manner. The Sun flings forth impurities, gets balefully incrusted with spots;
but it does not quench itself, and become no Sun at all, but a mass of
Darkness! I will venture to say that such never befell a great deep Cromwell; I
think, never. Nature's own lionhearted Son; Antaeus-like, his strength is got
by touching the Earth, his Mother; lift him up from the Earth, lift him up into
Hypocrisy, Inanity, his strength is gone. We will not assert that Cromwell was
an immaculate man; that he fell into no faults, no insincerities among the
rest. He was no dilettante professor of "perfections," "immaculate
conducts." He was a rugged Orson, rending his rough way through actual
true work, doubtless with many a fall therein. Insincerities, faults, very
many faults daily and hourly: it was too well known to him; known to God and
him! The Sun was dimmed many a time; but the Sun had not himself grown a
Dimness. Cromwell's last words, as he lay waiting for death, are those of a
Christian heroic man. Broken prayers to God, that He would judge him and this
Cause, He since man could not, in justice yet in pity. They are most touching
words. He breathed out his wild great soul, its toils and sins all ended now,
into the presence of his Maker, in this manner. I, for one, will not call the
man a Hypocrite! Hypocrite, mummer, the life of him a mere theatricality; empty
barren quack, hungry for the shouts of mobs? The man had made obscurity do very
well for him till his head was gray; and now he was, there as he stood
recognized unblamed, the virtual King of England. Cannot a man do without
King's Coaches and Cloaks? Is it such a blessedness to have clerks forever
pestering you with bundles of papers in red tape? A simple Diocletian prefers
planting of cabbages; a George Washington, no very immeasurable man, does the
like. One would say, it is what any genuine man could do; and would do. The
instant his real work were out in the matter of Kingship, away with it! Let
us remark, meanwhile, how indispensable everywhere a King is, in all movements
of men. It is strikingly shown, in this very War, what becomes of men when they
cannot find a Chief Man, and their enemies can. The Scotch Nation was all but
unanimous in Puritanism; zealous and of one mind about it, as in this English
end of the Island was always far from being the case. But there was no great
Cromwell among them; poor tremulous, hesitating, diplomatic Argyles and such
like: none of them had a heart true enough for the truth, or durst commit
himself to the truth. They had no leader; and the scattered Cavalier party in
that country had one: Montrose, the noblest of all the Cavaliers; an
accomplished, gallant-hearted, splendid man; what one may call the
Hero-Cavalier. Well, look at it; on the one hand subjects without a King; on
the other a King without subjects! The subjects without King can do nothing;
the subjectless King can do something. This Montrose, with a handful of Irish
or Highland savages, few of them so much as guns in their hands, dashes at the
drilled Puritan armies like a wild whirlwind; sweeps them, time after time,
some five times over, from the field before him. He was at one period, for a
short while, master of all Scotland. One man; but he was a man; a million
zealous men, but without the one; they against him were powerless! Perhaps of
all the persons in that Puritan struggle, from first to last, the single
indispensable one was verily Cromwell. To see and dare, and decide; to be a
fixed pillar in the welter of uncertainty; a King among them, whether they
called him so or not.
Precisely here, however, lies the rub for Cromwell.
His other proceedings have all found advocates, and stand generally justified;
but this dismissal of the Rump Parliament and assumption of the Protectorship,
is what no one can pardon him. He had fairly grown to be King in England; Chief
Man of the victorious party in England: but it seems he could not do without
the King's Cloak, and sold himself to perdition in order to get it. Let us see
a little how this was. England, Scotland, Ireland, all lying now subdued at the
feet of the Puritan Parliament, the practical question arose, What was to be
done with it? How will you govern these Nations, which Providence in a wondrous
way has given up to your disposal? Clearly those hundred surviving members of
the Long Parliament, who sit there as supreme authority, cannot continue forever
to sit. What is to be done? It was a question which theoretical
constitution-builders may find easy to answer; but to Cromwell, looking there
into the real practical facts of it, there could be none more complicated. He
asked of the Parliament, What it was they would decide upon? It was for the
Parliament to say. Yet the Soldiers too, however contrary to Formula, they who
had purchased this victory with their blood, it seemed to them that they also
should have something to say in it! We will not "for all our fighting have
nothing but a little piece of paper." We understand that the Law of God's
Gospel, to which He through us has given the victory, shall establish itself,
or try to establish itself, in this land! For three years, Cromwell says, this
question had been sounded in the ears of the Parliament. They could make no
answer; nothing but talk, talk. Perhaps it lies in the nature of parliamentary
bodies; perhaps no Parliament could in such case make any answer but even that
of talk, talk! Nevertheless the question must and shall be answered. You sixty
men there, becoming fast odious, even despicable, to the whole nation, whom the
nation already calls Rump Parliament, you cannot continue to sit there: who or
what then is to follow? "Free Parliament," right of Election,
Constitutional Formulas of one sort or the other, the thing is a hungry Fact
coming on us, which we must answer or be devoured by it! And who are you that
prate of Constitutional Formulas, rights of Parliament? You have had to kill your
King, to make Pride's Purges, to expel and banish by the law of the stronger
whosoever would not let your Cause prosper: there are but fifty or threescore
of you left there, debating in these days. Tell us what we shall do; not in the
way of Formula, but of practicable Fact! How they did finally answer, remains
obscure to this day. The diligent Godwin himself admits that he cannot make it
out. The likeliest is, that this poor Parliament still would not, and indeed
could not dissolve and disperse; that when it came to the point of actually
dispersing, they again, for the tenth or twentieth time, adjourned it, and
Cromwell's patience failed him. But we will take the favorablest hypothesis
ever started for the Parliament; the favorablest, though I believe it is not
the true one, but too favorable. According to this version: At the uttermost
crisis, when Cromwell and his Officers were met on the one hand, and the fifty
or sixty Rump Members on the other, it was suddenly told Cromwell that the Rump
in its despair was answering in a very singular way; that in their splenetic
envious despair, to keep out the Army at least, these men were hurrying through
the House a kind of Reform Bill, Parliament to be chosen by the whole of
England; equable electoral division into districts; free suffrage, and the rest
of it! A very questionable, or indeed for them an unquestionable thing. Reform
Bill, free suffrage of Englishmen? Why, the Royalists themselves, silenced
indeed but not exterminated, perhaps outnumber us; the great numerical majority
of England was always indifferent to our Cause, merely looked at it and
submitted to it. It is in weight and force, not by counting of heads, that we
are the majority! And now with your Formulas and Reform Bills, the whole matter,
sorely won by our swords, shall again launch itself to sea; become a mere hope,
and likelihood, small even as a likelihood? And it is not a likelihood; it is a
certainty, which we have won, by God's strength and our own right hands, and do
now hold here. Cromwell walked down to these refractory Members; interrupted
them in that rapid speed of their Reform Bill; ordered them to begone, and
talk there no more. Can we not forgive him? Can we not understand him? John
Milton, who looked on it all near at hand, could applaud him. The Reality had
swept the Formulas away before it. I fancy, most men who were realities in
England might see into the necessity of that. The strong daring man, therefore,
has set all manner of Formulas and logical superficialities against him; has
dared appeal to the genuine Fact of this England, Whether it will support him
or not? It is curious to see how he struggles to govern in some constitutional
way; find some Parliament to support him; but cannot. His first Parliament, the
one they call Barebones's Parliament, is, so to speak, a Convocation of the
Notables. From all quarters of England the leading Ministers and chief Puritan
Officials nominate the men most distinguished by religious reputation,
influence and attachment to the true Cause: these are assembled to shape out a
plan. They sanctioned what was past; shaped as they could what was to come.
They were scornfully called Barebones's Parliament: the man's name, it seems,
was not Barebones, but Barbone, a good enough man. Nor was it a jest, their
work; it was a most serious reality, a trial on the part of these Puritan
Notables how far the Law of Christ could become the Law of this England. There
were men of sense among them, men of some quality; men of deep piety I suppose the
most of them were. They failed, it seems, and broke down, endeavoring to reform
the Court of Chancery! They dissolved themselves, as incompetent; delivered up
their power again into the hands of the Lord General Cromwell, to do with it
what he liked and could. What will he do with it? The Lord General Cromwell,
"Commander-in-chief of all the Forces raised and to be raised;" he
hereby sees himself, at this unexampled juncture, as it were the one available
Authority left in England, nothing between England and utter Anarchy but him
alone. Such is the undeniable Fact of his position and England's, there and
then. What will he do with it? After deliberation, he decides that he will
accept it; will formally, with public solemnity, say and vow before God and men,
"Yes, the Fact is so, and I will do the best I can with it!"
Protectorship, Instrument of Government, these are the external forms of the
thing; worked out and sanctioned as they could in the circumstances be, by the
Judges, by the leading Official people, "Council of Officers and Persons
of interest in the Nation:" and as for the thing itself, undeniably
enough, at the pass matters had now come to, there was no alternative but
Anarchy or that. Puritan England might accept it or not; but Puritan England
was, in real truth, saved from suicide thereby! I believe the Puritan People
did, in an inarticulate, grumbling, yet on the whole grateful and real way,
accept this anomalous act of Oliver's; at least, he and they together made it
good, and always better to the last. But in their Parliamentary articulate way,
they had their difficulties, and never knew fully what to say to it! Oliver's
second Parliament, properly his first regular Parliament, chosen by the rule
laid down in the Instrument of Government, did assemble, and worked; but got,
before long, into bottomless questions as to the Protector's right, as to
"usurpation," and so forth; and had at the earliest legal day to be
dismissed. Cromwell's concluding Speech to these men is a remarkable one. So
likewise to his third Parliament, in similar rebuke for their pedantries and
obstinacies. Most rude, chaotic, all these Speeches are; but most
earnest-looking. You would say, it was a sincere helpless man; not used to
speak the great inorganic thought of him, but to act it rather! A helplessness
of utterance, in such bursting fulness of meaning. He talks much about
"births of Providence:" All these changes, so many victories and
events, were not forethoughts, and theatrical contrivances of men, of me or of
men; it is blind blasphemers that will persist in calling them so! He insists
with a heavy sulphurous wrathful emphasis on this. As he well might. As if a
Cromwell in that dark huge game he had been playing, the world wholly thrown
into chaos round him, had foreseen it all, and played it all off like a
precontrived puppet-show by wood and wire! These things were foreseen by no
man, he says; no man could tell what a day would bring forth: they were
"births of Providence," God's finger guided us on, and we came at
last to clear height of victory, God's Cause triumphant in these Nations; and
you as a Parliament could assemble together, and say in what manner all this
could be organized, reduced into rational feasibility among the affairs of men.
You were to help with your wise counsel in doing that. "You have had such
an opportunity as no Parliament in England ever had." Christ's Law, the
Right and True, was to be in some measure made the Law of this land. In place
of that, you have got into your idle pedantries, constitutionalities,
bottomless cavillings and questionings about written laws for my coming here;
and would send the whole matter into Chaos again, because I have no Notary's
parchment, but only God's voice from the battle-whirlwind, for being President
among you! That opportunity is gone; and we know not when it will return. You
have had your constitutional Logic; and Mammon's Law, not Christ's Law, rules
yet in this land. "God be judge between you and me!" These are his
final words to them: Take you your constitution-formulas in your hand; and I my
informal struggles, purposes, realities and acts; and "God be judge
between you and me!" We said above what shapeless, involved chaotic
things the printed Speeches of Cromwell are. Wilfully ambiguous, unintelligible,
say the most: a hypocrite shrouding himself in confused Jesuitic jargon! To me
they do not seem so. I will say rather, they afforded the first glimpses I
could ever get into the reality of this Cromwell, nay into the possibility of
him. Try to believe that he means something, search lovingly what that may be:
you will find a real speech lying imprisoned in these broken rude tortuous
utterances; a meaning in the great heart of this inarticulate man! You will,
for thc first time, begin to see that he was a man; not an enigmatic chimera,
unintelligible to you, incredible to you. The Histories and Biographies written
of this Cromwell, written in shallow sceptical generations that could not know
or conceive of a deep believing man, are far more obscure than Cromwell's
Speeches. You look through them only into the infinite vague of Black and the
Inane. "Heats and jealousies," says Lord Clarendon himself:
"heats and jealousies," mere crabbed whims, theories and crotchets;
these induced slow sober quiet Englishmen to lay down their ploughs and work;
and fly into red fury of confused war against the best-conditioned of Kings!
Try if you can find that true. Scepticism writing about Belief may have great
gifts; but it is really ultra vires there. It is Blindness laying down the Laws
of Optics. Cromwell's third Parliament split on the same rock as his second.
Ever the constitutional Formula: How came you there? Show us some Notary
parchment! Blind pedants: "Why, surely the same power which makes you a
Parliament, that, and something more, made me a Protector!" If my
Protectorship is nothing, what in the name of wonder is your Parliamenteership,
a reflex and creation of that? Parliaments having failed, there remained
nothing but the way of Despotism. Military Dictators, each with his district,
to coerce the Royalist and other gainsayers, to govern them, if not by act of
Parliament, then by the sword. Formula shall not carry it, while the Reality is
here! I will go on, protecting oppressed Protestants abroad, appointing just
judges, wise managers, at home, cherishing true Gospel ministers; doing the
best I can to make England a Christian England, greater than old Rome, the
Queen of Protestant Christianity; I, since you will not help me; I while God
leaves me life! Why did he not give it up; retire into obscurity again, since
the Law would not acknowledge him? cry several. That is where they mistake. For
him there was no giving of it up! Prime ministers have governed countries,
Pitt, Pombal, Choiseul; and their word was a law while it held: but this Prime
Minister was one that could not get resigned. Let him once resign, Charles
Stuart and the Cavaliers waited to kill him; to kill the Cause and him. Once
embarked, there is no retreat, no return. This Prime Minister could retire
no-whither except into his tomb. One is sorry for Cromwell in his old days. His
complaint is incessant of the heavy burden Providence has laid on him. Heavy;
which he must bear till death. Old Colonel Hutchinson, as his wife relates it,
Hutchinson, his old battle-mate, coming to see him on some indispensable
business, much against his will, Cromwell "follows him to the
door," in a most fraternal, domestic, conciliatory style; begs that he
would be reconciled to him, his old brother in arms; says how much it grieves
him to be misunderstood, deserted by true fellow-soldiers, dear to him from of
old: the rigorous Hutchinson, cased in his Republican formula, sullenly goes
his way. And the man's head now white; his strong arm growing weary with its
long work! I think always too of his poor Mother, now very old, living in that
Palace of his; a right brave woman; as indeed they lived all an honest
God-fearing Household there: if she heard a shot go off, she thought it was her
son killed. He had to come to her at least once a day, that she might see with
her own eyes that he was yet living. The poor old Mother! What had this man
gained; what had he gained? He had a life of sore strife and toil, to his last
day. Fame, ambition, place in History? His dead body was hung in chains, his
"place in History," place in History forsooth! has been a place
of ignominy, accusation, blackness and disgrace; and here, this day, who knows
if it is not rash in me to be among the first that ever ventured to pronounce
him not a knave and liar, but a genuinely honest man! Peace to him. Did he not,
in spite of all, accomplish much for us? We walk smoothly over his great rough
heroic life; step over his body sunk in the ditch there. We need not spurn it,
as we step on it! Let the Hero rest. It was not to men's judgment that he
appealed; nor have men judged him very well.
Precisely a century and a year after this of Puritanism had got itself hushed up into decent composure, and its results made smooth, in 1688, there broke out a far deeper explosion, much more difficult to hush up, known to all mortals, and like to be long known, by the name of French Revolution. It is properly the third and final act of Protestantism; the explosive confused return of mankind to Reality and Fact, now that they were perishing of Semblance and Sham. We call our English Puritanism the second act: "Well then, the Bible is true; let us go by the Bible!" "In Church," said Luther; "In Church and State," said Cromwell, "let us go by what actually is God's Truth." Men have to return to reality; they cannot live on semblance. The French Revolution, or third act, we may well call the final one; for lower than that savage Sansculottism men cannot go. They stand there on the nakedest haggard Fact, undeniable in all seasons and circumstances; and may and must begin again confidently to build up from that. The French explosion, like the English one, got its King, who had no Notary parchment to show for himself. We have still to glance for a moment at Napoleon, our second modern King. Napoleon does by no means seem to me so great a man as Cromwell. His enormous victories which reached over all Europe, while Cromwell abode mainly in our little England, are but as the high stilts on which the man is seen standing; the stature of the man is not altered thereby. I find in him no such sincerity as in Cromwell; only a far inferior sort. No silent walking, through long years, with the Awful Unnamable of this Universe; "walking with God," as he called it; and faith and strength in that alone: latent thought and valor, content to lie latent, then burst out as in blaze of Heaven's lightning! Napoleon lived in an age when God was no longer believed; the meaning of all Silence, Latency, was thought to be Nonentity: he had to begin not out of the Puritan Bible, but out of poor Sceptical Encyclopedies. This was the length the man carried it. Meritorious to get so far. His compact, prompt, every way articulate character is in itself perhaps small, compared with our great chaotic inarticulate Cromwell's. Instead of "dumb Prophet struggling to speak," we have a portentous mixture of the Quack withal! Hume's notion of the Fanatic-Hypocrite, with such truth as it has, will apply much better to Napoleon than it did to Cromwell, to Mahomet or the like, where indeed taken strictly it has hardly any truth at all. An element of blamable ambition shows itself, from the first, in this man; gets the victory over him at last, and involves him and his work in ruin. "False as a bulletin" became a proverb in Napoleon's time. He makes what excuse he could for it: that it was necessary to mislead the enemy, to keep up his own men's courage, and so forth. On the whole, there are no excuses. A man in no case has liberty to tell lies. It had been, in the long-run, better for Napoleon too if he had not told any. In fact, if a man have any purpose reaching beyond the hour and day, meant to be found extant next day, what good can it ever be to promulgate lies? The lies are found out; ruinous penalty is exacted for them. No man will believe the liar next time even when he speaks truth, when it is of the last importance that he be believed. The old cry of wolf! A Lie is no-thing; you cannot of nothing make something; you make nothing at last, and lose your labor into the bargain. Yet Napoleon had a sincerity: we are to distinguish between what is superficial and what is fundamental in insincerity. Across these outer manoeuverings and quackeries of his, which were many and most blamable, let us discern withal that the man had a certain instinctive ineradicable feeling for reality; and did base himself upon fact, so long as he had any basis. He has an instinct of Nature better than his culture was. His savans, Bourrienne tells us, in that voyage to Egypt were one evening busily occupied arguing that there could be no God. They had proved it, to their satisfaction, by all manner of logic. Napoleon looking up into the stars, answers, "Very ingenious, Messieurs: but who made all that?" The Atheistic logic runs off from him like water; the great Fact stares him in the face: "Who made all that?" So too in Practice: he, as every man that can be great, or have victory in this world, sees, through all entanglements, the practical heart of the matter; drives straight towards that. When the steward of his Tuileries Palace was exhibiting the new upholstery, with praises, and demonstration how glorious it was, and how cheap withal, Napoleon, making little answer, asked for a pair of scissors, clips one of the gold tassels from a window-curtain, put it in his pocket, and walked on. Some days afterwards, he produced it at the right moment, to the horror of his upholstery functionary; it was not gold but tinsel! In St. Helena, it is notable how he still, to his last days, insists on the practical, the real. "Why talk and complain; above all, why quarrel with one another? There is no result in it; it comes to nothing that one can do. Say nothing, if one can do nothing!" He speaks often so, to his poor discontented followers; he is like a piece of silent strength in the middle of their morbid querulousness there. And accordingly was there not what we can call a faith in him, genuine so far as it went? That this new enormous Democracy asserting itself here in the French Revolution is an unsuppressible Fact, which the whole world, with its old forces and institutions, cannot put down; this was a true insight of his, and took his conscience and enthusiasm along with it, a faith. And did he not interpret the dim purport of it well? "La carriere ouverte aux talens, The implements to him who can handle them:" this actually is the truth, and even the whole truth; it includes whatever the French Revolution or any Revolution, could mean. Napoleon, in his first period, was a true Democrat. And yet by the nature of him, fostered too by his military trade, he knew that Democracy, if it were a true thing at all, could not be an anarchy: the man had a heart-hatred for anarchy. On that Twentieth of June (1792), Bourrienne and he sat in a coffee-house, as the mob rolled by: Napoleon expresses the deepest contempt for persons in authority that they do not restrain this rabble. On the Tenth of August he wonders why there is no man to command these poor Swiss; they would conquer if there were. Such a faith in Democracy, yet hatred of anarchy, it is that carries Napoleon through all his great work. Through his brilliant Italian Campaigns, onwards to the Peace of Leoben, one would say, his inspiration is: "Triumph to the French Revolution; assertion of it against these Austrian Simulacra that pretend to call it a Simulacrum!" Withal, however, he feels, and has a right to feel, how necessary a strong Authority is; how the Revolution cannot prosper or last without such. To bridle in that great devouring, self-devouring French Revolution; to tame it, so that its intrinsic purpose can be made good, that it may become organic, and be able to live among other organisms and formed things, not as a wasting destruction alone: is not this still what he partly aimed at, as the true purport of his life; nay what he actually managed to do? Through Wagrams, Austerlitzes; triumph after triumph, he triumphed so far. There was an eye to see in this man, a soul to dare and do. He rose naturally to be the King. All men saw that he was such. The common soldiers used to say on the march: "These babbling Avocats, up at Paris; all talk and no work! What wonder it runs all wrong? We shall have to go and put our Petit Caporal there!" They went, and put him there; they and France at large. Chief-consulship, Emperorship, victory over Europe; till the poor Lieutenant of La Fere, not unnaturally, might seem to himself the greatest of all men that had been in the world for some ages. But at this point, I think, the fatal charlatan-element got the upper hand. He apostatized from his old faith in Facts, took to believing in Semblances; strove to connect himself with Austrian Dynasties, Popedoms, with the old false Feudalities which he once saw clearly to be false; considered that he would found "his Dynasty" and so forth; that the enormous French Revolution meant only that! The man was "given up to strong delusion, that he should believe a lie;" a fearful but most sure thing. He did not know true from false now when he looked at them, the